Selected quad for the lemma: lord_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
lord_n day_n jew_n sabbath_n 19,355 5 10.1747 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A65719 A treatise of traditions ... Whitby, Daniel, 1638-1726. 1688 (1688) Wing W1740_pt1; Wing W1742_pt2; ESTC R234356 361,286 418

There are 31 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

together_o in_o the_o church_n they_o do_v and_o therefore_o what_o be_v come_v together_o v._o 17._o come_v to_o the_o church_n v._o 18._o come_v to_o one_o place_n v._o 19_o be_v come_v together_o to_o eat_v v._o 33._o according_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n thus_o to_o communicate_v upon_o the_o lord_n day_n pliny_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o emperor_n trajan_n 97._o soliti_fw-la sunt_fw-la stato_fw-la die_fw-la ante_fw-la lucem_fw-la convenire_fw-la etc._n etc._n ep._n l._n 10._o ep._n 97._o tell_v he_o that_o he_o find_v nothing_o to_o allege_v against_o the_o christian_n but_o their_o obstinacy_n in_o their_o superstition_n and_o that_o be_v be_v their_o custom_n to_o meet_v together_o on_o a_o set_a day_n before_o it_o be_v light_a and_o to_o bind_v themselves_o by_o the_o sacrament_n to_o do_v no_o evil_n now_o this_o epistle_n be_v write_v only_o six_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o evangelist_n saint_n john._n and_o justin_n m._n who_o write_v but_o fifty_o year_n after_o his_o death_n 99_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d apol._n 2._o p._n 98_o 99_o thus_o speak_v on_o sunday_n all_o the_o christian_n in_o the_o city_n or_o country_n meet_v together_o because_o that_o be_v the_o day_n of_o our_o lord_n resurrection_n and_o then_o we_o have_v read_v unto_o we_o the_o write_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n this_o do_v the_o precedent_n make_v a_o oration_n to_o the_o assembly_n to_o exhort_v they_o to_o imitate_v and_o do_v the_o thing_n they_o hear_v then_o we_o all_o join_v in_o prayer_n and_o after_o that_o we_o celebrate_v the_o sacrament_n and_o they_o that_o be_v willing_a and_o able_a give_v their_o alm_n etc._n etc._n four_o four_o 4_o this_o may_v be_v further_o prove_v from_o the_o church_n testimony_n and_o from_o the_o plain_a expression_n of_o the_o father_n who_o flourish_v in_o the_o first_o and_o pure_a age_n of_o the_o church_n for_o to_o this_o effect_n century_n the_o first_o beside_o the_o word_n of_o clemens_n romanus_n already_o mention_v the_o apostle_n barnabas_n say_v of_o the_o apostle_n and_o christian_n in_o the_o general_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 15._o sect._n 15._o we_o keep_v the_o eight_o day_n a_o festival_n in_o which_o our_o jesus_n rise_v from_o the_o dead_a century_n the_o second_o i_o have_v produce_v the_o plain_a testimony_n of_o ignatius_n justin_n m._n irenaeus_n dionysius_n of_o corinth_n melito_n sardensis_n century_n the_o three_o i_o have_v produce_v already_o the_o testimony_n of_o clemens_n of_o alexandria_n to_o which_o add_v that_o of_o tertullian_n who_o say_v in_o his_o apology_n diem_fw-la folis_fw-la laetitiae_fw-la indulgemus_fw-la 16._o cap._n 16._o sunday_n be_v the_o festival_n of_o we_o christian_n and_o in_o his_o book_n ad_fw-la nationes_fw-la that_o they_o do_v rejoice_v upon_o that_o day_n 13._o solemn_a christianorum_fw-la deum_fw-la aestimant_fw-la quod_fw-la innotuerit_fw-la nos_fw-la die_fw-la solis_fw-la etc._n etc._n lib._n 1._o cap._n 13._o and_o that_o this_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o well_o know_v to_o the_o heathen_n that_o hence_o they_o take_v occasion_n to_o conjecture_v that_o the_o sun_n be_v the_o god_n of_o christian_n 75._o neque_fw-la enim_fw-la resurrectio_fw-la domini_fw-la semel_fw-la in_o anno_fw-la &_o non_fw-la semper_fw-la post_fw-la septem_fw-la dies_fw-la celebratur_fw-la in_o esa_n hom._n 6._o hom._n 7._o in_o exod._n fol._n 41._o ep._n 38._o ed._n ox._n p._n 75._o that_o of_o origen_n that_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v not_o celebrate_v annual_o only_a but_o every_o seven_o day_n which_o therefore_o in_o opposition_n to_o the_o jew_n he_o call_v dominica_n nostra_fw-la the_o christian_n lord_n day_n and_o that_o of_o cyprian_a that_o aurelius_n dominico_n legit_fw-la read_v on_o t●●_n lord_n day_n centuny_n the_o four_o epiphanus_n inform_v we_o 22._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d expos_fw-la fid_fw-we cap._n 22._o that_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n keep_v every_o lord_n day_n as_o a_o festival_n in_o a_o word_n no_o church_n no_o single_a writer_n ever_o represent_v this_o as_o a_o new_a or_o introduce_v practice_n but_o do_v continual_o speak_v of_o it_o as_o the_o constant_a practice_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n we_o never_o read_v that_o any_o of_o the_o convert_a jew_n though_o they_o retain_v the_o jewish_a sabbath_n ever_o dispute_v the_o observation_n of_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n in_o honour_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o therefore_o as_o the_o reverend_a bishop_n bramhal_v true_o say_v 918._o pag._n 918._o to_o question_v now_o whether_o there_o be_v a_o formal_a precept_n for_o that_o which_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n have_v obey_v ever_o since_o christ_n time_n and_o shall_v obey_v until_o his_o second_o come_v be_v a_o strange_a degree_n of_o folly._n and_o that_o this_o may_v be_v far_a evident_a i_o add_v this_o second_o proposition_n that_o the_o apostle_n have_v commission_n from_o the_o lord_n christ_n christ_n 5_o 2._o prop._n 2._o or_o be_v direct_v by_o his_o spirit_n to_o ordain_v and_o choose_v this_o day_n to_o be_v employ_v in_o the_o public_a exercise_n of_o christian_a piety_n and_o in_o remembrance_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o lord_n for_o first_o christ_n do_v commission_n his_o apostle_n to_o teach_v the_o church_n all_o his_o doctrine_n and_o to_o deliver_v they_o all_o his_o command_n and_o order_n which_o concern_v their_o duty_n and_o his_o service_n for_o thus_o he_o deliver_v his_o commission_n to_o they_o all_o authority_n be_v commit_v to_o i_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n 28.18_o matth._n 28.18_o go_v therefore_o and_o disciple_v all_o nation_n teach_v they_o to_o observe_v all_o that_o i_o have_v command_v you_o 20.21_o john_n 20.21_o he_o also_o say_v unto_o they_o that_o as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o so_o send_v i_o you_o and_o sure_o the_o father_n send_v he_o who_o be_v lord_n of_o the_o sabbath_n with_o full_a commission_n to_o change_v and_o alter_v it_o and_o substitute_v another_o day_n in_o lieu_n thereof_o according_o the_o apostle_n exercise_v this_o power_n they_o found_v church_n they_o deliver_v to_o they_o the_o doctrine_n and_o command_n of_o christ_n they_o settle_a church_n officer_n order_n and_o discipline_n and_o sure_o than_o they_o have_v commission_n also_o to_o settle_v the_o time_n to_o be_v appoint_v for_o the_o service_n of_o their_o lord_n and_o master_n when_o therefore_o they_o begin_v to_o practice_v the_o observation_n of_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n they_o only_o do_v what_o their_o commission_n from_o the_o lord_n impower_v they_o to_o do_v second_o that_o the_o apostle_n be_v direct_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o set_v apart_o this_o day_n for_o holy_a worship_n or_o to_o appoint_v church_n meeting_n on_o this_o day_n and_o therefore_o that_o this_o be_v do_v by_o a_o divine_a authority_n appear_v from_o this_o that_o their_o determination_n touch_v small_a matter_n and_o which_o be_v only_o ●porary_a be_v by_o themselves_o ascribe_v to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n thus_o when_o saint_n paul_n give_v his_o advice_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o present_a necessity_n touch_v a_o single_a life_n though_o he_o confess_v he_o have_v not_o express_v from_o christ_n touch_v that_o matter_n yet_o he_o ascribe_v this_o counsel_n to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 7.40_o 1_o cor._n 7.40_o for_o i_o think_v say_v he_o i_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n again_o the_o same_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o direction_n which_o he_o give_v concern_v their_o church_n meeting_n and_o their_o behaviour_n in_o they_o say_v 14.37_o 1_o cor._n 14.37_o if_o any_o man_n think_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o prophet_n or_o spiritual_a let_v he_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o thing_n i_o write_v unto_o you_o be_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o same_o must_v therefore_o be_v much_o more_o acknowledge_v of_o thing_n of_o so_o high_a a_o nature_n as_o that_o be_v which_o they_o deliver_v to_o be_v observe_v by_o the_o universal_a church_n they_o be_v equal_o appoint_v and_o authorize_v to_o instruct_v they_o in_o discipline_n and_o in_o matter_n of_o divine_a worship_n as_o in_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n and_o as_o well_o by_o word_n as_o by_o epistle_n and_o therefore_o as_o well_o in_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o time_n appoint_v for_o the_o worship_n of_o their_o lord_n as_o in_o the_o due_a regulation_n of_o it_o when_o they_o come_v together_o the_o same_o saint_n paul_n profess_v 11.23_o 1_o cor._n 11.23_o that_o he_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o lord_n what_o he_o deliver_v to_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n touch_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o when_o he_o speak_v of_o one_o particular_a concern_v which_o he_o have_v no_o precept_n from_o christ_n he_o say_v express_o this_o speak_v i_o not_o the_o lord_n 7.12_o 1_o cor._n 7.12_o if_o then_o the_o practice_n touch_v the_o observation_n of_o
〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o this_o behalf_n moreover_o this_o expression_n be_v in_o use_n among_o the_o jew_n of_o that_o age_n as_o appear_v from_o that_o say_n of_o the_o book_n of_o maccabee_n 15.18_o 2_o maccab._n 15.18_o the_o care_n they_o take_v for_o their_o wife_n and_o child_n etc._n etc._n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o least_o account_n with_o they_o their_o principal_a fear_n be_v for_o the_o holy_a temple_n whence_o it_o appear_v that_o our_o translation_n of_o this_o phrase_n be_v very_o suitable_a to_o the_o language_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o of_o the_o age_n in_o which_o they_o live_v and_o consequent_o to_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o these_o word_n 2_o the_o apostle_n here_o make_v no_o distinction_n of_o part_n of_o the_o sabbath_n to_o be_v retain_v and_o other_o part_n to_o be_v abolish_v if_o therefore_o no_o man_n shall_v condemn_v we_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o not_o observe_v part_n of_o a_o sabbath_n than_o no_o man_n shall_v condemn_v we_o for_o not_o observe_v the_o rest_v enjoin_v on_o that_o day_n that_o be_v eminent_o part_v of_o the_o sabbath_n 3_o if_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o word_n in_o part_n can_v only_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o sacrifice_n offer_v on_o the_o sabbath_n then_o must_v it_o only_o relate_v to_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a moon_n and_o other_o feast_n to_o which_o it_o more_o immediate_o be_v join_v whereas_o it_o be_v acknowledge_v not_o only_o that_o the_o sacrifice_n offer_v then_o but_o even_o the_o whole_a new_a moon_n and_o feast_n be_v part_n of_o that_o hand-writing_n which_o be_v blot_v out_o and_o shadow_n of_o thing_n future_a and_o solemnity_n for_o not_o observe_v any_o part_n of_o which_o the_o christian_a be_v not_o to_o be_v censure_v or_o condemn_v and_o therefore_o this_o must_v be_v affirm_v also_o of_o the_o whole_a sabbath_n festival_n 4thly_a there_o be_v not_o one_o example_n in_o the_o whole_a sacred_a writ_n in_o which_o it_o can_v be_v show_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v signify_v the_o sacrifice_n offer_v on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n in_o distinction_n from_o the_o other_o duty_n of_o the_o day_n whence_o evident_a it_o be_v that_o this_o exposition_n of_o the_o word_n be_v groundless_a beside_o have_v the_o apostle_n intend_v by_o these_o word_n only_o to_o signify_v that_o no_o man_n shall_v condemn_v the_o christian_n for_o not_o offer_v sacrifice_n on_o that_o day_n what_o reason_n can_v there_o be_v why_o he_o shall_v not_o have_v plain_o say_v so_o rather_o than_o signify_v his_o mind_n in_o term_n so_o much_o offensive_a to_o the_o jew_n as_o seem_v to_o declare_v the_o abrogation_n of_o their_o whole_a sabbath_n and_o to_o misguide_v the_o christian_a into_o such_o a_o apprehension_n sure_o have_v the_o apostle_n embrace_v the_o sabbatarian_n doctrine_n he_o will_v not_o have_v afford_v so_o great_a occasion_n to_o other_o to_o reject_v it_o but_o against_o this_o argument_n the_o sabbatarian_o thus_o object_n that_o the_o sabbath_n here_o mention_v be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o shadow_n of_o thing_n future_a object_n 1_o but_o the_o seven_o day_n sabbath_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o a_o thing_n past_a viz._n of_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world._n that_o the_o sabbath_n be_v not_o as_o the_o objection_n without_o ground_n answer_n affirm_v a_o sign_n but_o a_o feast_n institute_v in_o commemoration_n of_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n prove_v not_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o shadow_n also_o of_o thing_n future_a for_o the_o passover_n be_v the_o memorial_n of_o god_n mercy_n in_o pass_v over_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n when_o he_o smite_v the_o egyptian_n the_o feast_n of_o tabernacle_n be_v a_o memorial_n that_o their_o father_n dwell_v in_o tent_n and_o tabernacle_n pentecost_n be_v a_o memorial_n of_o the_o give_v of_o the_o law_n at_o mount_n sinai_n the_o feast_n of_o unleavened_a bread_n be_v celebrate_v in_o memory_n of_o their_o pass_v out_o of_o egypt_n with_o their_o dough_n unleavened_a and_o of_o their_o deliverance_n from_o the_o affliction_n they_o endure_v in_o egypt_n if_o therefore_o notwithstanding_o the_o institution_n of_o these_o feast_n in_o memory_n of_o what_o be_v past_a it_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o all_o christian_n that_o they_o be_v shadow_n of_o good_a thing_n to_o come_v the_o seven_o day_n sabbath_n may_v be_v both_o and_o whereas_o it_o be_v by_o the_o sabbatarian_o say_v that_o the_o seven_o day_n sabbath_n seem_v not_o to_o be_v a_o shadow_n of_o any_o blessing_n which_o we_o at_o present_a do_v enjoy_v by_o christ_n it_o may_v be_v answer_v 1._o that_o this_o expression_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o necessary_o import_v that_o the_o thing_n mention_v here_o be_v shadow_n which_o relate_v to_o thing_n future_a but_o only_o that_o comparative_o to_o those_o future_a thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v prescribe_v and_o teach_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o religion_n they_o be_v shadow_n 2._o this_o objection_n seem_v to_o contradict_v the_o very_a word_n of_o the_o apostle_n l._n apostolo_n respond_v si_fw-la potes_fw-la qui_fw-la vacationem_fw-la istius_fw-la diei_fw-la umbram_fw-la futuri_fw-la esse_fw-la tes●●tur_fw-la contra_fw-la faustum_n l._n and_o therefore_o what_o saint_n austin_n say_v to_o faustus_n be_v very_o proper_a here_o answer_v thou_o the_o apostle_n if_o thou_o can_v who_o witness_v that_o rest_v on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n be_v a_o shadow_n of_o that_o which_o be_v to_o come_v even_o the_o ancient_a jew_n acknowledge_v that_o their_o sabbath_n be_v a_o shadow_n of_o the_o age_n of_o the_o messiah_n this_o be_v their_o assertion_n that_o the_o sabbath_n be_v give_v as_o a_o type_n of_o the_o holam_fw-la habba_n or_o the_o age_n to_o come_v by_o which_o they_o understand_v the_o age_n of_o the_o messiah_n whence_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n the_o world_n to_o come_v do_v clear_o signify_v the_o gospel_n age_n and_o this_o they_o gather_v from_o these_o expression_n of_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n 66.23_o ch._n 66.23_o which_o say_v that_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o from_o one_o new_a moon_n and_o from_o one_o sabbath_n to_o another_o shall_v all_o flesh_n come_v to_o worship_n before_o the_o lord_n which_o say_v the_o jew_n be_v speak_v of_o that_o age_n to_o come_v which_o shall_v be_v all_o sabbath_n 4._o in_o signo_fw-la data_fw-la sunt_fw-la judaeorum_fw-la populo_fw-la iren._n l._n 4._o c._n 30._o ita_fw-la iren._n l._n 4._o c._n 30._o barnabas_n ep._n ep._n 15._o orig_n hom._n 23._o in_o numer_n f._n 136._o august_n l._n 4._o de_fw-fr gen._n ad_fw-la lit_fw-fr c._n 11._o clemens_n alex._n strom._n l._n 4._o p._n 477._o orig._n hom._n 23._o in_o num._n f._n 136._o machar_n hom._n 35._o greg._n nyssen_n hom._n 7._o in_o eccles_n tom._n 1._o p._n 440._o cyril_n alex._n in_o cap_n 6._o amosi_fw-la p._n 315._o sabbata_n perseverantiam_fw-la totius_fw-la diei_fw-la erga_fw-la deum_fw-la deservitionis_fw-la edocebant_fw-la iren._n lib._n 4._o cap._n 30._o just_a m._n in_o dial._n cum_fw-la tryph._n p._n 229._o c._n tertull._n advers._fw-la jud._n c._n 4._o and_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n do_v with_o one_o voice_n declare_v that_o the_o jewish_a sabbath_n be_v typical_a and_o figure_v the_o spiritual_a rest_n which_o righteous_a person_n shall_v enjoy_v by_o christ_n and_o their_o spiritual_a cease_v from_o the_o work_n of_o sin_n and_o that_o we_o always_o ought_v to_o be_v employ_v in_o god_n service_n four_o four_o 13_o the_o father_n with_o one_o voice_n assert_v that_o the_o sabbath_n be_v ceremonial_a and_o that_o the_o christian_n or_o at_o least_o the_o gentile_a convert_v be_v not_o oblige_v to_o observe_v it_o justin_n m._n assert_n that_o after_o the_o appear_v of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n we_o have_v no_o need_n to_o observe_v the_o sabbath_n 30._o lib._n 4._o c._n 30._o irenaeus_n that_o it_o do_v not_o justify_v and_o that_o the_o ancient_a patriarch_n please_v god_n without_o the_o observation_n of_o it_o 4._o adu._n jud._n c._n 4._o tertullian_n that_o the_o observation_n of_o it_o be_v temporary_a and_o that_o it_o be_v blot_v out_o like_a as_o circumcision_n and_o other_o rite_n of_o the_o old_a law._n the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n declare_v that_o christian_n ought_v not_o to_o rest_n on_o the_o sabbath_n 29._o can._n 29._o but_o work_n on_o it_o prefer_v before_o it_o the_o lord_n day_n epiphanius_n say_v that_o our_o lord_n do_v his_o miracle_n on_o the_o sabbath_n and_o command_v the_o impotent_a man_n to_o take_v up_o his_o bed_n on_o that_o day_n to_o insinuate_v that_o the_o sabbath_n be_v to_o be_v dissolve_v 82._o haer._n 30._o ebion_n ebion_n 32._o vid._n haer._n 66._o c._n 82._o that_o hence_o the_o apostle_n know_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o sabbath_n be_v dissolve_v that_o it_o be_v dissolve_v by_o the_o come_v of_o christ_n the_o great_a
sabbath_n who_o give_v we_o rest_n from_o our_o sin_n 38._o catech_v 4._o p._n 38._o saint_n cyril_n of_o jerusalem_n tell_v his_o catechist_n that_o all_o observation_n of_o sabbath_n be_v to_o be_v reject_v it_o will_v be_v endless_a to_o recite_v all_o that_o the_o father_n say_v upon_o this_o subject_a but_o if_o we_o do_v consider_v how_o constant_o the_o father_n teach_v that_o the_o patriarch_n and_o pious_a man_n before_o the_o promulgation_n of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n observe_v not_o the_o sabbath_n how_o general_o they_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v a_o shadow_n of_o good_a thing_n to_o come_v by_o christ_n and_o that_o our_o saviour_n both_o by_o his_o miracle_n perform_v upon_o that_o day_n and_o by_o he_o contest_v with_o the●harisees_n ●harisees_z design_v to_o insinuate_v the_o dissolution_n of_o it_o we_o can_v no_o long_o doubt_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o ancient_n in_o this_o matter_n to_o proceed_v then_o to_o answer_v the_o objection_n of_o the_o sabbatarian_o sabbatarian_o 14_o first_o mr._n m._n object_n object_n 1_o that_o god_n bless_v the_o seven_o day_n and_o sanctify_v it_o because_o in_o that_o and_o not_o in_o any_o other_o 205._o other_o 9_o p._n 205._o he_o have_v rest_v from_o all_o his_o work_n gen._n 2._o and_o then_o inquire_v how_o come_v this_o blessing_n give_v to_o no_o other_o day_n among_o the_o seven_o but_o give_v to_o the_o seven_o day_n only_o to_o be_v lose_v who_o take_v away_o the_o sanctification_n of_o it_o give_v by_o god_n himself_o and_o give_v for_o a_o reason_n which_o be_v as_o oblige_v now_o as_o ever_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v answ_n that_o to_o bless_v and_o sanctify_v the_o seven_o day_n do_v only_o signify_v to_o set_v apart_o that_o day_n for_o his_o peculiar_a worship_n or_o as_o the_o badge_n and_o sign_n by_o which_o the_o people_n who_o own_v jehovah_n for_o their_o god_n shall_v be_v distinguish_v from_o all_o other_o people_n and_o by_o which_o he_o shall_v also_o be_v di_v vish_v from_o all_o other_o god_n by_o a_o work_n peculiar_a to_o himself_o for_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o all_o nation_n and_o of_o all_o religion_n to_o set_v apart_o some_o day_n or_o time_n as_o sacred_a for_o the_o worship_n of_o their_o god_n and_o in_o that_o time_n to_o solemnize_v their_o worship_n by_o the_o commemoration_n or_o the_o imitation_n of_o some_o peculiar_a action_n for_o which_o they_o be_v honour_v god_n will_v have_v this_o to_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o his_o peenliar_a people_n the_o rest_a on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n in_o token_n that_o they_o own_v he_o as_o the_o creator_n of_o the_o world_n by_o imitation_n of_o the_o rest_n he_o take_v when_o he_o have_v make_v it_o this_o god_n himself_o declare_v by_o say_v 16._o exod._n 31.15_o 16._o the_o child_n of_o israel_n shall_v keep_v the_o sabbath_n to_o observe_v it_o through_o their_o generation_n for_o a_o perpetual_a covenant_n it_o be_v a_o sign_n betwixt_o i_o and_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n for_o ever_o for_o in_o six_o day_n the_o lord_n make_v heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o on_o the_o seven_o day_n he_o rest_v that_o be_v now_o that_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n be_v come_v to_o be_v my_o people_n in_o covenant_n they_o shall_v keep_v the_o seven_o day_n as_o a_o sign_n that_o they_o be_v consecrate_a to_o the_o service_n of_o the_o creator_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o they_o own_v he_o as_o their_o god._n 20.12_o ezek._n 20.12_o hence_o be_v these_o sabbath_n say_v to_o be_v give_v to_o be_v a_o sign_n betwixt_o god_n and_o they_o that_o they_o may_v know_v he_o be_v the_o lord_n that_o sanctify_a they_o and_o god_n command_v they_o to_o observe_v they_o 31.13_o exod._n 31.13_o that_o they_o may_v know_v he_o be_v the_o lord_n that_o sanctify_a they_o that_o be_v do_v consecrate_v and_o separate_v they_o from_o all_o other_o nation_n to_o be_v his_o own_o peculiar_a people_n hence_o also_o be_v it_o that_o till_o god_n have_v make_v of_o abraham_n a_o great_a nation_n till_o he_o have_v free_v this_o nation_n from_o that_o bondage_n they_o be_v under_o to_o the_o egyptian_n who_o will_v not_o let_v they_o rest_v from_o work_n and_o choose_v they_o to_o be_v his_o own_o peculiar_a people_n he_o lay_v not_o this_o injunction_n on_o they_o for_o even_o the_o very_a sabbath_n day_n before_o that_o mention_v by_o moses_n to_o be_v observe_v by_o they_o as_o a_o day_n of_o rest_n 9.14_o exod._n 16.1_o neh._n 9.14_o they_o march_v a_o wearisome_a journey_n and_o come_v at_o night_n to_o the_o wilderness_n of_o sin_n and_o therefore_o nehemiah_n say_v that_o god_n make_v know_v to_o they_o his_o holy_a sabbath_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o moses_n his_o servant_n that_o be_v than_o do_v he_o set_v a_o part_n that_o day_n to_o be_v a_o day_n to_o be_v observe_v by_o they_o in_o honour_n of_o he_o according_o the_o christian_a father_n general_o teach_v that_o none_o of_o the_o patriarch_n do_v keep_v the_o sabbath_n nor_o do_v we_o find_v from_o adam_n to_o joseph_n the_o least_o mention_n of_o the_o observation_n of_o it_o though_o we_o find_v frequent_a mention_n of_o all_o other_o act_n and_o requisit_n of_o their_o religious_a worship_n of_o their_o grove_n and_o oratory_n their_o priest_n and_o altar_n their_o sacrifice_n and_o oblation_n prayer_n vow_n thanksgiving_n and_o after_o abraham_n of_o their_o circumcision_n the_o book_n of_o genesis_n be_v partly_o spend_v in_o give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o travel_n of_o these_o patriarch_n from_o one_o place_n to_o another_o and_o yet_o it_o add_v not_o one_o word_n of_o their_o rest_v any_o where_n because_o it_o be_v the_o sabbath_n day_n now_o do_v it_o not_o seem_v strange_a that_o such_o a_o solemn_a command_n shall_v have_v be_v give_v to_o adam_n and_o all_o mankind_n as_o some_o conceive_v it_o be_v and_o not_o the_o least_o print_n or_o token_n of_o the_o observation_n of_o it_o to_o be_v find_v for_o two_o thousand_o year_n and_o whereas_o some_o object_n those_o word_n of_o moses_n object_n this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o lord_n have_v say_v 16.23_o exod._n 16.23_o to_o morrow_n be_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o holy_a sabbath_n to_o the_o lord_n and_o thence_o collect_v that_o god_n have_v before_o moses_n give_v a_o command_n touch_v the_o observation_n of_o that_o day_n it_o may_v be_v answer_v that_o the_o word_n be_v be_v want_v in_o the_o hebrew_n and_o so_o the_o word_n may_v thus_o be_v render_v this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o lord_n have_v say_v to_o morrow_n shall_v be_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o holy_a sabbath_n to_o the_o lord_n and_o so_o they_o will_v accord_v exact_o with_o those_o other_o scripture_n which_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o sabbath_n be_v make_v know_v to_o the_o jew_n not_o by_o abraham_n or_o joseph_n but_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o moses_n 12._o ezek._n 20.10_o 12._o that_o god_n cause_v they_o to_o go_v forth_o out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n and_o then_o give_v they_o his_o sabbath_n to_o be_v a_o sign_n between_o he_o and_o they_o whereas_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o covenant_n between_o he_o and_o abraham_n be_v only_a that_o of_o circumcision_n now_o from_o all_o these_o consideration_n it_o seem_v evident_a that_o the_o import_n of_o those_o word_n of_o moses_n in_o genesis_n the_o second_o wherefore_o the_o lord_n bless_v the_o seven_o day_n and_o hallow_v it_o be_v only_o this_o god_n make_v the_o world_n in_o six_o day_n and_o rest_v the_o seven_o which_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o when_o he_o choose_v to_o himself_o a_o peculiar_a people_n he_o make_v that_o the_o day_n they_o be_v to_o set_v apart_o for_o his_o service_n that_o so_o they_o may_v acknowledge_v he_o who_o they_o serve_v to_o be_v the_o creator_n of_o the_o world._n and_o because_o on_o the_o same_o day_n god_n overthrow_v pharaoh_n and_o his_o host_n in_o the_o red_a sea_n 56._o see_v mr._n mede_n disc_n 15._o p._n 56._o and_o by_o that_o action_n complete_v his_o deliverance_n of_o his_o people_n from_o egyptian_a bondage_n therefore_o he_o give_v that_o as_o a_o far_a reason_n of_o the_o observance_n of_o that_o day_n 5.15_o deut._n 5.15_o say_v remember_v that_o thou_o be_v a_o servant_n in_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n and_o that_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n bring_v thou_o out_o thence_o with_o a_o mighty_a hand_n and_o with_o a_o stretch_a out_o arm_n therefore_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n command_v thou_o to_o keep_v the_o sabbath_n day_n hence_o therefore_o 1._o we_o see_v sufficient_a cause_n why_o this_o command_n shall_v be_v insert_v into_o the_o decalogue_n with_o as_o much_o ceremony_n and_o solemnity_n as_o the_o other_o be_v although_o it_o be_v not_o moral_a as_o to_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o it_o be_v so_o far_o moral_a with_o respect_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o
its_o observance_n viz._n the_o own_v the_o creator_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n as_o their_o peculiar_a god_n in_o opposition_n to_o all_o heathen_a deity_n that_o upon_o this_o depend_v the_o performance_n of_o all_o the_o other_o duty_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o first_o table_n for_o it_o be_v this_o institution_n which_o continual_o bring_v this_o fundamental_a article_n to_o their_o remembrance_n that_o the_o god_n they_o worship_v be_v the_o creator_n of_o the_o world_n they_o can_v not_o ask_v themselves_o why_o they_o thus_o rest_v but_o this_o must_v come_v into_o their_o mind_n this_o can_v not_o come_v into_o their_o mind_n but_o they_o must_v be_v incline_v to_o despise_v all_o the_o old_a heathen_a deity_n the_o sun_n moon_n and_o star_n and_o the_o whole_a earth_n as_o be_v all_o the_o creature_n of_o their_o great_a jehovah_n wherefore_o this_o precept_n have_v such_o strict_a affinity_n with_o the_o other_o three_o which_o be_v unquestionable_o intend_v to_o remove_v the_o kind_n the_o object_n the_o sign_n and_o instrument_n of_o idolatry_n and_o keep_v they_o close_o to_o the_o sole_a worship_n of_o the_o true_a jehovah_n may_v very_o well_o find_v place_n among_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o decalogue_n 2._o hence_o also_o may_v we_o see_v sufficient_a reason_n for_o the_o strict_a charge_n god_n give_v for_o observation_n of_o the_o sabbath_n for_o the_o severe_a punishment_n which_o he_o inflict_v on_o the_o violator_n of_o it_o and_o for_o the_o promise_v he_o make_v of_o signal_n blessing_n to_o the_o observer_n of_o it_o viz._n because_o the_o observation_n of_o this_o day_n tend_v so_o full_o to_o establish_v the_o great_a foundation_n of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n that_o jehovah_n the_o creator_n of_o the_o world_n be_v their_o god_n in_o covenant_n and_o because_o it_o be_v a_o most_o effectual_a bar_n against_o the_o old_a idolatry_n of_o the_o world_n which_o chief_o do_v consist_v in_o worship_v the_o whole_a or_o else_o some_o part_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n on_o which_o account_n we_o find_v god_n often_o mention_v these_o thing_n together_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o sabbath_n and_o the_o flee_v from_o idolatry_n 4._o levit._fw-la 19.3_o 4._o as_o in_o these_o word_n you_o shall_v keep_v my_o sabbath_n i_o be_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n turn_v you_o not_o to_o idol_n nor_o make_v to_o yourselves_o melt_a god_n 2._o levit._fw-la 26.1_o 2._o i_o be_o the_o lord_n your_o god._n and_o in_o these_o follow_v you_o shall_v make_v no_o idol_n nor_o grave_a image_n nor_o shall_v you_o set_v up_o a_o image_n of_o stone_n in_o the_o land_n to_o bow_v down_o unto_o it_o for_o i_o be_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n you_o shall_v keep_v my_o sabbath_n last_o because_o the_o violation_n of_o this_o law_n be_v a_o virtual_a denial_n of_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n and_o consequent_o of_o that_o god_n who_o make_v it_o and_o give_v they_o this_o temptation_n to_o worship_n the_o heavenly_a being_n that_o they_o be_v eternal_a according_o we_o find_v the_o jew_n usual_o commit_v both_o these_o sin_n at_o once_o idolatry_n to_o wit_n and_o violation_n of_o the_o sabbath_n as_o in_o those_o word_n they_o pollute_v my_o sabbath_n 20.16_o ezek._n 20.16_o for_o their_o heart_n go_v after_o their_o idol_n and_o in_o those_o of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o book_n of_o maccabee_n many_o of_o the_o israelite_n consent_v to_o the_o religion_n of_o antiochus_n 1.43_o 1_o mac._n 1.43_o and_o sacrify_v unto_o idol_n and_o profane_v the_o sabbath_n since_o then_o the_o observation_n of_o this_o day_n be_v of_o so_o great_a moment_n for_o preservation_n of_o they_o from_o that_o idolatry_n to_o which_o they_o be_v so_o prone_a and_o the_o neglect_n of_o it_o put_v they_o in_o so_o great_a danger_n of_o return_v to_o it_o sure_o we_o may_v discern_v sufficient_a reason_n of_o the_o severity_n and_o promise_n forenamed_a and_o of_o the_o frequent_a charge_n give_v for_o the_o strict_a observance_n of_o it_o 3._o hence_o also_o may_v we_o see_v the_o plain_a reason_n for_o the_o non-obligation_n of_o the_o seven_o day_n sabbath_n now_o because_o that_o reason_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o it_o which_o concern_v their_o freedom_n from_o egyptian_a bondage_n be_v peculiar_a to_o the_o jew_n and_o therefore_o never_o can_v concern_v the_o christian_n the_o other_o reason_n assign_v by_o god_n that_o it_o may_v be_v a_o sign_n between_o god_n and_o they_o that_o they_o be_v his_o peculiar_a people_n and_o that_o he_o be_v the_o lord_n that_o sanctify_a they_o must_v also_o cease_v upon_o their_o cease_v to_o be_v his_o peculiar_a people_n and_o to_o have_v any_o more_o relation_n to_o he_o as_o their_o god_n in_o covenant_n yea_o see_v god_n have_v now_o cast_v off_o that_o very_a people_n to_o who_o he_o give_v the_o sabbath_n for_o a_o sign_n and_o as_o josephus_n true_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o law_n peculiar_a to_o that_o nation_n and_o that_o dispensation_n it_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o judaisme_n and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o virtual_a revolt_n to_o the_o mosaic_a dispensation_n to_o be_v still_o out_o of_o conscience_n observer_n of_o the_o rest_n which_o be_v peculiar_a to_o that_o law_n and_o nation_n if_o it_o be_v here_o inquire_v object_n whether_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o seven_o day_n assign_v in_o the_o four_o commandment_n viz._n because_o god_n rest_v on_o that_o day_n do_v not_o remain_v and_o equal_o concern_v all_o christian_n i_o answer_v no._n for_o 1._o answ_n it_o seem_v a_o vulgar_a error_n to_o conceive_v that_o god_n do_v chief_o and_o primary_o command_v the_o jew_n to_o rest_n upon_o the_o seven_o day_n in_o imitation_n of_o his_o rest_n there_o be_v nothing_o moral_a or_o nothing_o in_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n which_o can_v induce_v they_o to_o imitate_v he_o in_o this_o matter_n any_o more_o than_o in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o six_o day_n precede_v in_o which_o god_n work_v which_o be_v so_o far_o from_o lay_v any_o necessary_a obligation_n on_o they_o to_o work_v upon_o those_o day_n that_o god_n himself_o establish_v many_o other_o festival_n as_o a_o perpetual_a ordinance_n in_o which_o they_o be_v oblige_v to_o cease_v from_o labour_n on_o those_o day_n on_o which_o he_o work_v wherefore_o the_o great_a design_n of_o god_n in_o require_v they_o to_o rest_n upon_o that_o day_n as_o he_o do_v be_v this_o that_o by_o so_o do_v they_o may_v acknowledge_v as_o by_o a_o sign_n and_o pledge_v that_o they_o do_v worship_n and_o own_v he_o as_o their_o god_n in_o covenant_n who_o be_v the_o sole_a creator_n of_o the_o world_n according_a to_o these_o word_n of_o god_n to_o moses_n speak_v thou_o unto_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n say_v 31.13.14_o ex._n 31.13.14_o very_o my_o sabbath_n you_o shall_v keep_v for_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n betwixt_o i_o and_o you_o throughout_o your_o generation_n that_o you_o may_v know_v that_o i_o be_o the_o lord_n that_o do_v sanctify_v you_o you_o shall_v keep_v the_o sabbath_n therefore_o for_o it_o be_v holy_a unto_o you_o wherefore_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n shall_v keep_v the_o sabbath_n to_o observe_v the_o sabbath_n throughout_o their_o generation_n for_o a_o perpetual_a covenant_n it_o be_v a_o sign_n between_o i_o and_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n for_o ever_o for_o in_o six_o day_n the_o lord_n make_v heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o on_o the_o seven_o day_n he_o rest_v now_o hence_o it_o follow_v that_o god_n neither_o do_v nor_o can_v agreeable_o to_o his_o design_n command_v the_o gentile_n then_o or_o before_o to_o observe_v the_o seven_o day_n in_o imitation_n of_o his_o rest_a for_o then_o the_o do_v this_o by_o his_o own_o nation_n can_v be_v no_o sign_n betwixt_o he_o and_o the_o jew_n that_o they_o be_v his_o peculiar_a people_n because_o it_o be_v according_a to_o this_o supposition_n the_o common_a duty_n of_o all_o other_o nation_n the_o gentile_a christian_n therefore_o never_o be_v oblige_v to_o observe_v this_o rest_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o four_o commandment_n and_o be_v also_o not_o oblige_v to_o it_o by_o any_o precept_n evangelical_n it_o can_v be_v in_o they_o any_o act_n of_o christian_a obedience_n but_o rather_o must_v be_v deem_v the_o fruit_n of_o jewish_a superstition_n so_o to_o do_v second_o answ_n 2_o i_o add_v that_o the_o injunction_n of_o this_o rest_n upon_o a_o reason_n which_o remain_v and_o which_o do_v in_o the_o general_n concern_v all_o christian_n will_v not_o infer_v the_o obligation_n of_o the_o christian_n to_o observe_v the_o rest_n command_v for_o that_o reason_n it_o be_v very_o common_a in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n to_o require_v the_o observation_n of_o ceremonial_a precept_n for_o reason_n which_o remain_v and_o which_o do_v equal_o concern_v all_o christian_n 37._o leu._n
and_o vehement_a in_o declare_v his_o and_o our_o freedom_n from_o the_o legal_a ceremony_n say_v notwithstanding_o that_o to_o the_o jew_n he_o become_v as_o a_o jew_n 9.20_o 1_o cor._n 9.20_o that_o he_o may_v gain_v the_o jew_n to_o they_o that_o be_v under_o the_o law_n as_o under_o the_o law_n that_o he_o may_v gain_v they_o that_o be_v under_o the_o law_n and_o therefore_o his_o example_n in_o these_o case_n will_v as_o much_o prove_v that_o we_o be_v to_o observe_v the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o the_o jewish_a custom_n as_o that_o we_o be_v oblige_v to_o keep_v the_o jewish_a sabbath_n mr._n m._n far_o add_v 7.19_o add_v 17._o obj._n 4._o p_o 210._o 1_o cor._n 7.19_o that_o st._n paul_n tell_v we_o that_o in_o christ_n jesus_n neither_o circumcision_n avail_v any_o thing_n nor_o uncircumcision_n but_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n of_o which_o the_o sanctification_n of_o the_o seven_o day_n be_v one_o answ_n to_o which_o i_o answer_v that_o here_o he_o plain_o beg_v the_o question_n which_o be_v only_o this_o whether_o the_o saturday_n under_o the_o christian_a oeconomy_n be_v still_o by_o god_n commandment_n to_o be_v observe_v as_o a_o day_n of_o rest_n and_o contradict_v the_o plain_a declaration_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o the_o whole_a christian_a church_n that_o it_o be_v ceremonial_a a_o shadow_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v a_o temporary_a precept_n which_o lay_v no_o obligation_n on_o the_o christian_a mr._n m._n close_v with_o the_o common_a sabbatarian_n objection_n 211._o objection_n 18._o obj._n 5._o p._n 211._o that_o christ_n foretell_v the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n which_o be_v to_o happen_v forty_o year_n after_o his_o resurrection_n when_o all_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n belong_v to_o the_o jew_n be_v abrogate_a bid_v his_o disciple_n pray_v their_o flight_n may_v not_o be_v in_o the_o winter_n or_o on_o the_o sabbath-day_n 24.20_o mat._n 24.20_o that_o they_o may_v avoid_v the_o profanation_n of_o that_o day_n whereas_o if_o that_o commandment_n have_v be_v ceremonial_a and_o then_o abrogate_a they_o may_v have_v flee_v upon_o that_o day_n as_o well_o as_o upon_o any_o other_o and_o can_v not_o by_o so_o do_v have_v profane_v it_o answ_n 1._o to_o this_o i_o answer_v first_o that_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v rational_o deem_v to_o import_v that_o he_o advise_v they_o to_o pray_v their_o flight_n may_v not_o be_v on_o the_o sabbath_n because_o he_o think_v such_o fly_v then_o a_o sinful_a action_n or_o a_o profanation_n of_o that_o day_n see_v he_o so_o express_o have_v declare_v the_o contrary_a 3.4_o mark_v 3.4_o say_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o save_v life_n upon_o the_o sabbath-day_n and_o that_o in_o all_o such_o case_n god_n will_v have_v mercy_n and_o not_o sacrifice_n 12.7_o mat._n 12.7_o that_o the_o rest_n of_o that_o day_n may_v be_v violate_v to_o preserve_v the_o life_n of_o a_o beast_n and_o much_o more_o to_o preserve_v the_o life_n of_o man_n that_o the_o sabbath_n be_v make_v for_o man_n and_o not_o man_n for_o the_o sabbath_n and_o therefore_o man_n may_v wave_v the_o rest_n require_v on_o that_o day_n when_o it_o be_v for_o his_o good_a to_o do_v so_o have_v then_o so_o oft_o and_o so_o express_o teach_v his_o disciple_n that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o fly_v for_o save_v of_o their_o life_n upon_o that_o day_n he_o can_v not_o use_v these_o word_n to_o intimate_v the_o contrary_n 2_o though_o it_o be_v lawful_a even_o when_o the_o four_o commandment_n be_v still_o in_o force_n to_o flee_v upon_o that_o day_n from_o danger_n and_o travel_v upon_o case_n of_o urgent_a necessity_n yet_o many_o of_o the_o jew_n think_v otherwise_o esteem_v this_o a_o intolerable_a profanation_n of_o the_o sabbath_n persecute_v and_o condemn_v our_o lord_n for_o teach_v the_o contrary_a if_o therefore_o his_o disciple_n or_o other_o christian_n shall_v have_v be_v compel_v to_o flee_v upon_o that_o day_n they_o may_v have_v be_v molest_v and_o persecute_v by_o their_o own_o superstitious_a nation_n and_o so_o have_v cause_n to_o pray_v their_o flight_n may_v not_o be_v on_o the_o sabbath-day_n and_o 3_o the_o believe_a jew_n adhere_v stiff_o to_o the_o observance_n of_o the_o jewish_a rite_n and_o consequent_o to_o the_o observance_n of_o the_o rest_v command_v on_o the_o jewish_a sabbath_n till_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o think_v themselves_o oblige_v so_o to_o do_v and_o therefore_o christ_n may_v well_o advise_v they_o know_v that_o they_o will_v still_o retain_v these_o apprehension_n to_o pray_v their_o flight_n may_v not_o fall_v out_o upon_o that_o day_n and_o though_o it_o can_v be_v expect_v that_o we_o shall_v know_v the_o reason_n of_o all_o his_o action_n yet_o may_v he_o still_o permit_v the_o christian_n to_o continue_v under_o this_o apprehension_n of_o their_o obligation_n to_o observe_v the_o law_n of_o moses_n that_o so_o the_o unbelieving_a jew_n may_v be_v the_o less_o offend_v at_o they_o and_o so_o may_v be_v more_o ready_a to_o embrace_v the_o christian_a faith_n and_o because_o he_o know_v the_o time_n will_v short_o come_v when_o the_o temple_n shall_v be_v destroy_v and_o they_o shall_v thereby_o be_v convince_v that_o the_o rite_n confine_v to_o that_o temple_n be_v abolish_v of_o tradition_n chap._n vi_o that_o there_o be_v no_o evidence_n of_o tradition_n for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v prove_v 1._o because_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o they_o in_o the_o ancient_a council_n the_o codex_fw-la canonum_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la universalis_fw-la the_o discourse_n of_o the_o ancient_n church_n government_n and_o discipline_n or_o in_o their_o ritual_n ritual_n 1._o 2._o because_o we_o find_v no_o mention_n of_o their_o article_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o creed_n enchriidion_n compendium_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o ecclesiastical_a opinion_n or_o in_o the_o catechistical_a discourse_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n father_n 2._o 3._o because_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o age_n be_v very_o careful_a and_o concern_v to_o preserve_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n true_o so_o call_v and_o so_o esteem_v by_o they_o and_o have_v occasion_n to_o mention_v they_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o pretence_n of_o the_o heretic_n of_o their_o time_n to_o tradition_n and_o yet_o they_o have_v not_o be_v concern_v to_o preserve_v the_o pretend_a traditionary_a doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n rome_n 3._o haning_n thus_o state_v the_o question_n in_o these_o proposition_n i_o come_v now_o to_o show_v that_o there_o be_v no_o evidence_n of_o tradition_n for_o any_o much_o less_o for_o all_o those_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o she_o have_v put_v into_o her_o creed_n and_o have_v require_v all_o her_o clorgy_n to_o believe_v and_o teach_v as_o that_o true_a catholic_n faith_n without_o which_o no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v for_o first_o first_o 1_o have_v they_o this_o evidence_n concern_v the_o exercise_n of_o the_o papal_a jurisdiction_n over_o all_o christian_n the_o practice_n of_o auricular_a confession_n and_o indulgence_n of_o prayer_n to_o saint_n and_o angel_n of_o veneration_n of_o image_n of_o perform_v the_o public_a service_n of_o prayer_n singing_n read_v in_o a_o tongue_n not_o understand_v by_o the_o people_n i_o say_v have_v they_o that_o evidence_n of_o apostolical_a tradition_n for_o these_o thing_n it_o will_v be_v as_o notorious_a that_o these_o doctrine_n be_v hand_v down_o by_o the_o catholic_n church_n throughout_o all_o age_n to_o this_o present_a as_o it_o be_v of_o other_o matter_n of_o continual_a practice_n viz._n the_o lord_n day_n assembly_n the_o ordination_n of_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n by_o bishop_n the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n by_o they_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o easter_n festival_n baptise_v by_o trine_n immersion_n the_o mixture_n of_o wine_n with_o water_n in_o the_o sacrament_n etc._n etc._n for_o all_o these_o matter_n be_v therefore_o evident_a in_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n because_o be_v continual_o practise_v by_o her_o member_n they_o have_v continual_a occasion_n to_o speak_v of_o they_o in_o their_o discourse_n of_o church_n government_n and_o church_n assembly_n and_o of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n and_o make_v numerous_a constitution_n about_o they_o they_o all_o appear_v in_o their_o most_o ancient_a ritual_n in_o the_o account_n they_o give_v we_o of_o their_o assembly_n and_o of_o their_o practice_n when_o assemble_v and_o in_o their_o ancient_a council_n the_o primitive_a writer_n mention_v they_o upon_o all_o occasion_n they_o draw_v argument_n and_o conclusion_n from_o they_o and_o show_v the_o reason_n why_o such_o establishment_n be_v make_v by_o the_o apostle_n the_o like_a we_o see_v now_o practise_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n touch_v the_o novelty_n now_o mention_v since_o they_o have_v
tradition_n do_v we_o not_o find_v they_o thus_o hand_v down_o to_o we_o in_o these_o write_n so_o can_v we_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o receive_v the_o pretend_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n because_o they_o be_v not_o hand_v down_o unto_o we_o in_o this_o manner_n but_o say_v mr._n m._n before_o we_o can_v know_v true_a book_n book_n 24_o and_o true_a copy_n of_o book_n from_o false_a 408._o p._n 407_o 408._o we_o must_v first_o know_v true_a tradition_n from_o false_a that_o we_o assure_o may_v say_v these_o be_v the_o true_a book_n of_o scripture_n these_o be_v the_o true_a copy_n of_o those_o book_n because_o true_a tradition_n commend_v they_o for_o such_o these_o be_v false_a book_n or_o false_a copy_n of_o true_a book_n because_o the_o tradition_n which_o commend_v these_o be_v false_a tell_v i_o the_o mean_n by_o which_o infallible_o the_o true_a tradition_n in_o this_o point_n may_v be_v know_v from_o the_o false_a and_o that_o very_a mean_n i_o will_v assign_v in_o other_o point_n to_o know_v true_a tradition_n from_o false_a this_o objection_n i_o retort_v thus_o resp_n before_o we_o can_v know_v true_a tradition_n from_o false_a we_o must_v know_v true_a faith_n from_o false_a for_o true_a tradition_n be_v only_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o faithful_a that_o be_v of_o those_o who_o do_v entire_o believe_v all_o the_o necessary_a article_n of_o christian_a faith_n and_o if_o i_o must_v first_o know_v this_o faith_n before_o i_o can_v know_v true_a tradition_n i_o can_v need_v tradition_n to_o instruct_v i_o in_o the_o christian_a faith._n again_o tell_v i_o the_o mean_n by_o which_o i_o may_v know_v true_a faith_n antecedent_o to_o tradition_n and_o the_o very_a same_o mean_n will_v i_o assign_v to_o know_v the_o faith_n of_o protestant_n without_o it_o 2._o this_o argument_n in_o the_o mouth_n of_o a_o unbelieving_a jew_n that_o live_v in_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n plead_v as_o strong_o for_o the_o vain_a tradition_n of_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n and_o the_o whole_a jewish_a nation_n reject_v by_o our_o lord_n and_o his_o apostle_n as_o for_o the_o pretend_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n v._o g._n you_o send_v we_o to_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n to_o learn_v the_o true_a messiah_n and_o from_o these_o scripture_n you_o attempt_v to_o prove_v your_o jesus_n be_v the_o messiah_n promise_v to_o the_o jew_n but_o before_o you_o can_v know_v whether_o the_o book_n you_o cite_v be_v the_o true_a book_n of_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o copy_n you_o have_v of_o they_o be_v true_a copy_n you_o must_v know_v true_a tradition_n from_o false_a tell_v i_o then_o the_o mean_n by_o which_o infallible_o the_o true_a tradition_n in_o this_o point_n may_v be_v know_v from_o the_o false_a and_o that_o very_a mean_n will_v i_o assign_v to_o prove_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n reject_v by_o your_o lord_n and_o his_o apostle_n to_o be_v true_a whatsoever_o answer_n mr._n m._n can_v return_v to_o this_o objection_n will_v be_v as_o applicable_a to_o his_o own_o 3._o to_o this_o demand_n i_o answer_v that_o where_o the_o tradition_n derive_v from_o the_o fountain_n of_o tradition_n and_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o write_a testimony_n to_o have_v do_v so_o and_o 2_o that_o where_o it_o be_v a_o tradition_n not_o of_o a_o matter_n of_o fact_n but_o faith_n and_o pass_v down_o without_o control_n and_o contradiction_n of_o any_o that_o be_v then_o and_o after_o own_v by_o other_o church_n as_o true_a christian_a brethren_n and_o 3_o where_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v irrational_a and_o absurd_a that_o the_o tradition_n can_v have_v so_o long_o and_o general_o obtain_v without_o just_a ground_n of_o be_v own_v as_o such_o there_o the_o tradition_n ought_v to_o be_v embrace_v as_o true_a when_o therefore_o mr._n m._n have_v prove_v the_o pretend_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o have_v these_o three_o character_n of_o true_a tradition_n we_o shall_v have_v equal_a reason_n to_o admire_v his_o part_n as_o we_o have_v now_o to_o wonder_v at_o his_o confidence_n but_o they_o who_o can_v believe_v impossibility_n may_v be_v allow_v to_o undertake_v they_o chap._n iu._n six_o we_o distinguish_v betwixt_o tradition_n touch_v pure_o doctrinal_n or_o divine_a revelation_n touch_v article_n of_o faith_n and_o matter_n of_o practice_n in_o the_o first_o the_o father_n have_v be_v subject_a to_o mistake_v in_o doctrine_n not_o fundamental_a as_o appear_v 1._o from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o mellennium_fw-la deliver_v in_o the_o second_o and_o three_o century_n as_o a_o tradition_n receive_v from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n apostle_n 1._o as_o a_o thing_n of_o which_o they_o be_v certain_a ibid._n 2._o as_o a_o doctrine_n prove_v from_o variety_n of_o scripture_n both_o of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n which_o can_v say_v they_o receive_v no_o other_o sense_n sense_n 2.3_o as_o a_o doctrine_n deny_v only_o by_o heretic_n or_o such_o as_o be_v deceive_v by_o they_o they_o 3._o it_o be_v embrace_v by_o the_o great_a number_n of_o christian_n and_o church_n guide_n deliver_v it_o not_o as_o doctor_n only_o but_o testator_n testator_n 4._o hence_o the_o uncertainty_n of_o such_o tradition_n be_v demonstrate_v and_o the_o falsehood_n of_o the_o pretend_a tradition_n for_o invocation_n of_o saint_n saint_n 5._o 2ly_n a_o like_a mistake_n be_v prove_v from_o the_o general_a doctrine_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o four_o first_o century_n that_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n be_v nigh_o at_o hand_n hand_n 6._o and_o that_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n come_v be_v at_o hand_n hand_n 7._o that_o the_o world_n shall_v end_v after_o six_o thousand_o year_n that_o be_v according_a to_o their_o computation_n five_o hundred_o year_n after_o our_o saviour_n advent_n advent_n 8._o the_o inference_n hence_o ibid._n in_o matter_n of_o practice_n we_o distinguish_v seven_o betwixt_o such_o as_o have_v be_v general_o receive_v without_o contest_v in_o the_o pure_a age_n of_o the_o church_n and_o such_o as_o have_v be_v contest_v and_o disow_v by_o orthodox_n church_n or_o member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o we_o can_v depend_v with_o certainty_n on_o the_o latter_a be_v prove_v 1._o from_o the_o contest_v betwixt_o p._n victor_n and_o the_o asiatic_n touch_v the_o easter_n festival_n in_o which_o it_o be_v observe_v 1._o that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n consent_v in_o judgement_n with_o victor_n and_o his_o synod_n synod_n 9.2_o that_o they_o who_o with_o he_o keep_v this_o feast_n on_o the_o lord_n day_n plead_v a_o apostolical_a tradition_n for_o that_o practice_n practice_n 10._o 3._o that_o they_o who_o keep_v it_o with_o the_o jew_n plead_v the_o same_o tradition_n and_o with_o great_a evidence_n evidence_n 11._o 4._o that_o when_o the_o pope_n endeavour_v by_o terrify_a letter_n to_o affright_v they_o from_o their_o practice_n all_o the_o asiatic_n and_o neighbour_a province_n refuse_v to_o hearken_v to_o he_o and_o condemn_v he_o for_o it_o it_o 12._o 5._o that_o hereupon_o victor_n attempt_v to_o excommunicate_v they_o and_o command_v other_o to_o have_v no_o communion_n with_o they_o they_o 13._o 6._o that_o notwithstanding_o this_o injunction_n all_o the_o other_o church_n hold_v communion_n with_o they_o and_o sharp_o reprehend_v victor_n as_o a_o disturber_n of_o the_o church_n peace_n peace_n 14._o inference_n hence_o show_v the_o falsehood_n of_o the_o fundamental_a rule_n of_o the_o guide_n of_o controversy_n and_o the_o uncertainty_n of_o tradition_n tradition_n 15._o which_o be_v far_o prove_v from_o the_o contest_v betwixt_o p._n stephen_n and_o st._n cyprian_n and_o the_o asiatic_n touch_v the_o baptise_v of_o heretic_n where_o it_o be_v observe_v 1._o that_o the_o opinion_n of_o stephen_n be_v for_o the_o baptise_v of_o no_o heretic_n no_o not_o those_o who_o be_v not_o baptise_a in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n that_o of_o st._n cyprian_n for_o the_o baptise_v of_o all_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n schismatic_n 16._o 2._o that_o pope_n stephen_n proceed_v to_o a_o excommunication_n of_o his_o brethren_n upon_o this_o account_n and_o a_o refusal_n of_o communion_n with_o they_o and_o so_o do_v pope_n xystus_n and_o dionysius_n after_o he_o whereas_o they_o of_o africa_n judge_v no_o man_n who_o differ_v from_o they_o they_o 17._o 3._o observe_v that_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o african_n and_o other_o eastern_a church_n be_v assert_v by_o many_o christian_a doctor_n church_n and_o council_n and_o be_v of_o long_a continuance_n after_o this_o dispute_n dispute_n 18._o 4._o observe_v that_o as_o pope_n stephen_n pretend_v to_o apostolical_a and_o original_a tradition_n for_o his_o opinion_n so_o do_v the_o contrary_a party_n for_o their_o opinion_n opinion_n 19_o 5._o that_o
the_o sabbath_n day_n answer_v answer_v 16._o his_o four_o objection_n that_o in_o christ_n jesus_n nothing_o avail_v but_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n answer_v answer_v 17._o his_o five_o objection_n from_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n pray_v that_o your_o flight_n be_v not_o on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n answer_v answer_v 18._o in_o this_o discourse_n i_o have_v endeavour_v to_o show_v in_o what_o sense_n we_o admit_v of_o tradition_n as_o a_o sufficient_a evidence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o what_o we_o do_v believe_v or_o practice_v and_o have_v demonstrate_v that_o in_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o receive_v upon_o her_o testimony_n the_o romanist_n can_v pretend_v unto_o a_o like_a tradition_n for_o any_o of_o their_o doctrine_n two_o thing_n they_o far_o do_v object_n against_o we_o as_o instance_n of_o thing_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v which_o yet_o say_v they_o have_v no_o foundation_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o therefore_o must_v be_v believe_v only_o on_o the_o account_n of_o tradition_n or_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n viz._n first_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o lord_n day_n and_o the_o liberty_n we_o take_v in_o work_v on_o the_o sabbath_n and_o not_o observe_v it_o as_o a_o day_n set_v apart_o unto_o the_o service_n of_o the_o creator_n of_o the_o world._n second_o the_o baptism_n of_o infant_n of_o which_o what_o mr._n m._n offer_v be_v sufficient_o consider_v in_o the_o follow_a treatise_n and_o the_o practice_n have_v of_o late_o be_v full_o justify_v from_o scripture_n and_o tradition_n joint_o by_o three_o learned_a treatise_n to_o which_o i_o shall_v refer_v the_o reader_n 4._o mr._n walker_n modest_a plea_n for_o infant_n baptism_n the_o case_n of_o infant_n baptism_n dr._n still_o rational_a account_n part._n 1._o cap._n 4._o touch_v the_o first_o particular_a i_o shall_v discourse_n at_o present_a in_o this_o preface_n and_o show_v in_o opposition_n to_o mr._n mumford_n that_o we_o have_v sufficient_a ground_n from_o scripture_n for_o observe_v the_o lord_n day_n and_o not_o observe_v of_o the_o sabbath_n day_n and_o that_o as_o far_o as_o we_o depend_v upon_o tradition_n in_o these_o point_n the_o romanist_n can_v show_v no_o like_a tradition_n for_o their_o tenet_n to_o begin_v with_o the_o first_o of_o these_o particular_n that_o the_o lord_n day_n be_v by_o all_o christian_n to_o be_v observe_v as_o a_o religious_a festival_n will_v be_v make_v good_a from_o these_o consideration_n first_o that_o it_o be_v mention_v in_o the_o scripture_n as_o a_o know_a festival_n day_n a_o day_n which_o bear_v christ_n be_v name_n a_o day_n on_o which_o the_o christian_n do_v assemble_v for_o the_o performance_n of_o sacred_a and_o religious_a worship_n second_o that_o it_o be_v perpetual_o and_o universal_o observe_v as_o such_o by_o the_o catholic_n church_n include_v the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o first_o that_o it_o be_v mention_v in_o scripture_n as_o a_o know_a festival_n day_n a_o day_n which_o bear_v christ_n name_n a_o day_n on_o which_o the_o christian_n do_v assemble_v for_o the_o performance_n of_o religious_a worship_n will_v appear_v one_a from_o that_o expression_n of_o st._n john_n john_n 2_o 10._o rev._n i_o 10._o i_o be_v in_o the_o spirit_n on_o the_o lord_n day_n for_o explication_n of_o which_o word_n observe_v first_o that_o the_o name_n lord_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n do_v ordinary_o signify_v the_o lord_n christ_n for_o god_n the_o father_n have_v commit_v all_o authority_n into_o his_o hand_n he_o by_o so_o do_v make_v he_o as_o saint_n peter_n say_v both_o lord_n and_o christ_n 36._o act._n ij_o 36._o and_o therefore_o by_o this_o name_n he_o be_v distinguish_v from_o god_n the_o father_n in_o these_o word_n 6._o 1_o cor._n viij_o 6._o there_o be_v one_o god_n the_o father_n of_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n and_o one_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n by_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n and_o again_o 6._o 1_o cor._n xij_o 5_o 6._o there_o be_v difference_n of_o administration_n but_o the_o same_o lord_n diversity_n of_o operation_n but_o the_o same_o god_n wherefore_o by_o the_o lord_n day_n here_o mention_v we_o can_v reasonable_o understand_v the_o jewish_a sabbath_n that_o be_v not_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n christ_n or_o a_o day_n institute_v in_o memorial_n of_o he_o but_o a_o day_n sanctify_v to_o jehovah_n who_o be_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n style_v god_n the_o father_n or_o absolute_o god_n and_o by_o that_o phrase_n distinguish_v from_o the_o lord_n christ_n moreover_o the_o sabbath_n be_v in_o scripture_n sometime_o say_v to_o be_v a_o day_n holy_a to_o the_o lord_n but_o it_o be_v never_o style_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o lord_n day_n either_o in_o scripture_n or_o in_o the_o record_n of_o the_o three_o first_o century_n and_o therefore_o we_o can_v have_v no_o reason_n to_o believe_v saint_n john_n intend_v the_o jewish_a sabbath_n by_o that_o phrase_n 2_o whereas_o saint_n john_n to_o denote_v the_o time_n when_o he_o receive_v his_o vision_n say_v it_o be_v on_o the_o lord_n day_n it_o follow_v that_o this_o day_n must_v be_v a_o day_n well_o know_v otherwise_o he_o can_v not_o by_o this_o note_n sufficient_o declare_v the_o time_n when_o he_o receive_v his_o vision_n since_o then_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n and_o that_o alone_o be_v by_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o first_o age_n style_v the_o lord_n day_n and_o know_v to_o they_o familiar_o by_o that_o name_n it_o be_v rational_a to_o conclude_v that_o the_o apostle_n by_o this_o phrase_n do_v understand_v the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n for_o confirmation_n of_o this_o argument_n it_o be_v observable_a that_o some_o copy_n read_v that_o passage_n of_o saint_n paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 2._o 1_o cor._n xuj_o 2._o on_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n be_v the_o lord_n day_n let_v every_o one_o lay_v by_o in_o store_n ignatius_n 26._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ep._n ad_fw-la manes_fw-la et_fw-la ad_fw-la trallian_n trallian_n 9_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d euseb_n hist_o eccl._n l._n 4._o c._n 23._o euseb_n h._n eccl._n l._n 4._o c._n 26._o who_o live_v thirty_o year_n in_o the_o apostle_n day_n speak_v thus_o that_o christian_n must_v no_o long_o sabbatise_v but_o keep_v the_o lord_n day_n in_o which_o our_o life_n spring_v up_o by_o he_o dionysius_n bishop_n of_o corinth_n who_o flourish_v in_o the_o second_o century_n write_v thus_o this_o day_n be_v the_o lord_n day_n we_o keep_v it_o holy._n melito_n bishop_n of_o sardis_n who_o flourish_v in_o the_o same_o century_n compose_v a_o book_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o lord_n day_n and_o another_o of_o the_o paschal_n solemnity_n clear_o distinguish_v the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o 115._o justin_n m._n qu._n &_o resp_n qu._n 115._o irenaeus_n bishop_n of_o lion_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o paschal_n solemnity_n declare_v that_o christian_n do_v not_o on_o the_o lord_n day_n which_o be_v a_o symbol_n of_o their_o resurrection_n bend_v the_o knee_n clemens_n of_o alexandria_n call_v the_o eight_o day_n 75._o contra_fw-la cell_n l._n 8._o p._n 392._o de_fw-fr cor._n mil._n c._n 3._o cyp._n ep._n 38._o ed._n ox._n p._n 75._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o lord_n day_n origen_n among_o the_o christian_a festival_n enumerate_v the_o lord_n day_n the_o easter_n and_o the_o pentecostal_n festival_n tertullian_n say_v dominico_n die_fw-la jejunium_fw-la nefas_fw-la ducimus_fw-la vel_fw-la de_fw-la geniculis_fw-la adorare_fw-la we_o judge_v it_o wickedness_n to_o kneel_v on_o the_o lord_n day_n and_o then_o he_o add_v that_o on_o the_o easter_n and_o the_o penticostal_n festival_n we_o enjoy_v the_o same_o freedom_n and_o indeed_o the_o thing_n be_v so_o notorious_a even_o to_o the_o heathen_a world_n that_o it_o be_v usual_a with_o they_o to_o put_v this_o question_n to_o the_o martyr_n dominicum_fw-la servasti_fw-la have_v thou_o observe_v the_o lord_n day_n to_o which_o their_o usual_a answer_n be_v christianus_n sum_n intermittere_fw-la non_fw-la possum_fw-la i_o be_o a_o christian_n and_o can_v cease_v to_o do_v it_o and_o that_o dominicum_fw-la agere_fw-la which_o be_v sometime_o the_o phrase_n import_v not_o to_o celebrate_v the_o lord_n supper_n but_o to_o observe_v the_o lord_n day_n be_v evident_a from_o clemens_n of_o alexandria_n 744._o strom._n 7._o p._n 744._o who_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o true_a gnostick_n do_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d make_v that_o day_n true_o the_o lord_n day_n by_o cast_v away_o every_o evil_a thought_n and_o celebrate_v the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n now_o from_o these_o passage_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o easter_n festival_n can_v not_o be_v here_o intend_v by_o saint_n john_n that_o be_v never_o style_v by_o the_o ancient_n absolute_o the_o lord_n day_n but_o always_o
either_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o great_a lord_n day_n or_o the_o paschal_n lord_n day_n and_o be_v constant_o in_o those_o first_o age_n distinguish_v from_o and_o in_o their_o enumeration_n of_o their_o festival_n oppose_v to_o the_o lord_n day_n moreover_o the_o easter_n feast_n seem_v not_o to_o have_v be_v so_o ancient_a as_o the_o apostle_n vision_n for_o than_o it_o will_v have_v be_v observe_v uniform_o as_o the_o lord_n be_v day_n be_v whereas_o the_o eastern_a and_o the_o western_a church_n differ_v much_o about_o it_o and_o that_o very_a difference_n demonstrate_v that_o the_o lord_n be_v day_n be_v the_o more_o ancient_a because_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o the_o eastern_a festival_n shall_v be_v keep_v on_o the_o lord_n day_n only_o or_o on_o the_o day_n of_o the_o fullmoon_n as_o by_o the_o jew_n it_o be_v on_o what_o day_n of_o the_o week_n soever_o that_o do_v happen_v and_o whereas_o mr._n m._n ask_v 207._o p._n 207._o how_o prove_v you_o that_o it_o be_v not_o christmas_n or_o ascention_n day_n i_o answer_v one_a that_o we_o have_v no_o evidence_n from_o antiquity_n that_o either_o of_o these_o festival_n be_v then_o observe_v much_o less_o that_o they_o be_v then_o know_v to_o the_o christian_a world_n under_o that_o appellation_n 2_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o all_o interpreter_n and_o the_o perpetual_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n from_o saint_n john_n to_o ignatius_n his_o scholar_n and_o so_o downward_o to_o this_o day_n do_v give_v the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n day_n to_o sunday_n and_o to_o no_o other_o festival_n of_o the_o church_n weekly_n or_o annual_a sufficient_o instruct_v we_o what_o saint_n john_n understand_v by_o the_o lord_n day_n 3_o observe_v that_o whatsoever_o in_o the_o scripture_n have_v the_o lord_n name_n and_o subscription_n on_o it_o as_o the_o lord_n temple_n the_o lord_n offering_n the_o lord_n people_n the_o lord_n priest_n be_v consecrate_v to_o the_o service_n of_o jehovah_n the_o lord_n of_o the_o old_a creation_n wherefore_o the_o day_n which_o have_v so_o early_a the_o name_n and_o superscription_n of_o the_o lord_n christ_n upon_o it_o must_v be_v suppose_v to_o be_v holy_a to_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o new_a creation_n and_o consecrate_v to_o his_o service_n for_o as_o the_o jewish_a sabbath_n be_v call_v the_o lord_n be_v sabbath_n or_o the_o sabbath_n of_o jehovah_n be_v by_o that_o title_n know_v to_o be_v a_o day_n sanctify_v to_o jehovah_n as_o creator_n so_o this_o day_n be_v call_v the_o lord_n be_v day_n be_v by_o this_o note_n as_o certain_o know_v to_o be_v a_o day_n consecrate_v to_o the_o service_n of_o the_o lord_n christ_n and_o as_o the_o lord_n be_v supper_n be_v style_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o sacramental_a table_n 21._o 1_o cor._n xi_o 20._o x._o 21._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o table_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o sacramental_a wine_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o cup_n of_o the_o lord_n either_o because_o the_o sacrament_n be_v institute_v immediate_o by_o the_o lord_n christ_n to_o be_v observe_v to_o his_o second_o come_v or_o second_o because_o it_o be_v appoint_v for_o the_o remembrance_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v death_n and_o passion_n till_o that_o time_n even_o so_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o lord_n day_n must_v be_v so_o call_v for_o one_o of_o these_o two_o reason_n or_o for_o both_o viz._n because_o it_o be_v enjoin_v by_o christ_n or_o by_o direction_n give_v to_o his_o apostle_n to_o command_v the_o observation_n of_o it_o as_o a_o day_n to_o be_v devote_v to_o the_o service_n of_o our_o lord_n christ_n or_o because_o it_o be_v by_o the_o apostle_n so_o observe_v in_o memory_n of_o our_o lord_n resurrection_n and_o be_v from_o they_o receive_v as_o a_o day_n to_o be_v observe_v for_o all_o future_a generation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o this_o day_n be_v certain_o observe_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o by_o the_o christian_n who_o live_v in_o their_o day_n in_o honour_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v evident_a from_o what_o have_v be_v already_o prove_v for_o if_o it_o be_v then_o know_v to_o christian_n by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n day_n and_o if_o so_o be_v the_o lord_n day_n must_v import_v a_o day_n that_o be_v consecrate_v to_o the_o service_n of_o the_o lord_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o they_o must_v then_o observe_v it_o as_o such_o or_o act_v against_o the_o knowledge_n of_o their_o duty_n if_o when_o saint_n john_n receive_v this_o vision_n it_o be_v know_v to_o be_v a_o day_n devote_v to_o the_o service_n of_o the_o lord_n christ_n it_o must_v be_v know_v to_o be_v thus_o consecrate_v to_o his_o service_n by_o some_o who_o have_v authority_n sufficient_a so_o to_o do_v that_o be_v at_o least_o by_o those_o apostle_n and_o ruler_n to_o who_o christ_n have_v commit_v the_o guidance_n of_o his_o church_n and_o the_o determination_n of_o that_o outward_a worship_n he_o require_v from_o his_o disciple_n what_o they_o thus_o consecrate_v to_o his_o service_n must_v be_v devote_v either_o by_o virtue_n of_o their_o positive_a institution_n or_o by_o their_o practice_n only_o if_o by_o virtue_n of_o their_o institution_n then_o be_v it_o grant_v that_o this_o day_n be_v of_o divine_a and_o apostolical_a institution_n if_o by_o their_o practice_n only_o yet_o be_v it_o grant_v that_o this_o day_n be_v constant_o observe_v by_o those_o apostle_n who_o be_v assist_v in_o their_o action_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o it_o be_v by_o their_o example_n commend_v to_o the_o practice_n of_o all_o christian_n and_o therefore_o be_v alone_o can_v alter_v this_o apostolical_a tradition_n who_o better_o know_v the_o mind_n of_o christ_n than_o they_o do_v and_o be_v more_o able_a to_o discern_v what_o service_n be_v well_o please_v to_o he_o than_o they_o be_v second_o second_o 2_o this_o practice_n will_v sufficient_o appear_v from_o other_o scripture_n which_o either_o presuppose_v or_o else_o direct_o show_v this_o be_v a_o day_n observe_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n saint_n paul_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n write_v thus_o now_o concern_v the_o collection_n for_o the_o saint_n as_o i_o have_v ordain_v for_o the_o church_n of_o galatia_n 2._o 1_o cor._n xuj_o 1_o 2._o so_o do_v you_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d upon_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n let_v every_o man_n lie_v by_o he_o in_o store_n as_o god_n have_v prosper_v he_o that_o there_o be_v no_o gather_v when_o i_o come_v where_o observe_v first_o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v certain_o signify_v the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n the_o day_n of_o our_o lord_n resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a for_o the_o four_o evangelist_n do_v with_o one_o voice_n aver_v that_o our_o lord_n jesus_n do_v arise_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n 20.1_o matth._n 28.1_o mark_v 16.2_o luke_n 24.1_o john_n 20.1_o nor_o can_v this_o reasonable_o be_v doubt_v by_o any_o who_o believe_v the_o scripture_n moreover_o saint_n mark_n do_v clear_o so_o interpret_v the_o phrase_n for_o the_o sabbath_n be_v over_o say_v he_o marry_o magdalene_n and_o other_o come_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d early_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n and_o find_v christ_n rise_v and_o v._o 9_o he_o add_v that_o christ_n be_v rise_v early_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o interpreter_n upon_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n saint_n luke_n observe_v 23.56_o luke_n 23.56_o that_o they_o rest_v on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n according_a to_o the_o commandment_n and_o then_o add_v that_o they_o come_v unto_o the_o sepulchre_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d on_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n second_o this_o may_v be_v argue_v from_o the_o succeed_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n which_o in_o compliance_n with_o this_o precept_n still_o offer_v their_o alm_n upon_o this_o day_n for_o justin_n m._n 99_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d apol_n 2._o p._n 98_o 99_o who_o flourish_v in_o the_o next_o age_n to_o the_o apostle_n tell_v the_o heathen_a emperor_n in_o his_o apology_n that_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o christian_n to_o meet_v on_o the_o lord_n day_n to_o pray_v to_o hear_v the_o word_n to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n and_o then_o say_v he_o they_o who_o be_v rich_a and_o willing_a give_v what_o they_o think_v fit_a and_o what_o be_v thus_o collect_v be_v lay_v up_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o precedent_n who_o distribute_v it_o to_o orphan_n and_o widow_n and_o other_o christian_n 203._o locuple_n &_o dive_v es_a &_o dominicum_fw-la observare_fw-la te_fw-la credis_fw-la qui_fw-la
the_o lord_n day_n have_v be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n we_o may_v suppose_v the_o apostle_n will_v not_o have_v fail_v to_o inform_v the_o christian_a church_n that_o this_o be_v their_o own_o constitution_n not_o the_o lord_n be_v which_o since_o they_o do_v not_o we_o may_v presume_v that_o they_o in_o this_o as_o well_o as_o other_o thing_n do_v only_o what_o they_o receive_v from_o the_o lord_n and_o last_o the_o apostle_n do_v command_v the_o christian_n to_o observe_v the_o tradition_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v 2.15_o 2_o thess_n 2.15_o whether_o by_o word_n or_o by_o epistle_n and_o therefore_o must_v command_v they_o to_o observe_v that_o day_n which_o by_o tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n be_v certain_o deliver_v to_o they_o but_o against_o these_o argument_n it_o be_v object_v object_n that_o we_o read_v in_o scripture_n of_o many_o thing_n ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v now_o lay_v aside_o viz._n the_o kiss_n of_o charity_n the_o love-feast_n the_o anoint_v with_o oil_n the_o abstain_v from_o thing_n strangle_v and_o from_o blood_n and_o therefore_o can_v rational_o conclude_v the_o lord_n be_v day_n ought_v to_o be_v observe_v perpetual_o and_o unalterable_o because_o it_o be_v ordain_v by_o those_o apostle_n who_o be_v assist_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v answ_n that_o apostolical_a constitution_n which_o concern_v the_o whole_a church_n must_v be_v esteem_v invariable_a and_o perpetual_a if_o they_o have_v these_o condition_n first_o that_o they_o be_v make_v upon_o such_o ground_n and_o reason_n as_o equal_o concern_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o all_o age_n and_o there_o have_v happen_v since_o no_o alteration_n of_o circumstance_n which_o make_v it_o reasonable_a then_o to_o observe_v what_o now_o we_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o perform_v v._o g._n the_o anoint_v of_o the_o sick_a be_v a_o ceremony_n annex_v to_o the_o extraordinary_a gift_n of_o healing_n which_o cease_v this_o appendix_n of_o it_o cease_v with_o it_o not_o by_o any_o repeal_n of_o the_o church_n but_o by_o expiration_n as_o all_o the_o constitution_n of_o saint_n paul_n touch_v the_o use_n of_o tongue_n do_v with_o the_o failure_n of_o that_o gift_n the_o law_n which_o oblige_v the_o gentile_a to_o abstain_v from_o thing_n strangle_v and_o blood_n be_v design_v only_o to_o avoid_v offend_v the_o weak_a jew_n there_o be_v therefore_o none_o such_o now_o nor_o any_o hope_n remain_v of_o their_o conversion_n by_o this_o abstinence_n that_o law_n must_v cease_v not_o by_o a_o positive_a repeal_n but_o by_o cessation_n of_o the_o cause_n or_o reason_n of_o it_o according_a to_o those_o know_a rule_n sublatâ_fw-la causâ_fw-la tollitur_fw-la effectus_fw-la &_o ratio_fw-la legis_fw-la est_fw-la lex_fw-la take_v away_o the_o cause_n and_o the_o effect_n cease_v second_o when_o they_o be_v not_o about_o some_o lesser_a ceremony_n or_o circumstance_n which_o in_o tract_n of_o time_n may_v become_v subject_a to_o abuse_v and_o hindrance_n to_o a_o great_a good_a and_o for_o that_o reason_n may_v be_v dispense_v with_o and_o abrogate_a by_o the_o church_n by_o virtue_n of_o that_o general_a rule_n of_o do_v all_o thing_n to_o edification_n but_o about_o matter_n of_o great_a moment_n such_o as_o concern_v the_o service_n of_o our_o great_a master_n and_o the_o time_n to_o be_v set_v apart_o for_o the_o performance_n of_o it_o for_o instance_n touch_v the_o kiss_n of_o charity_n all_o that_o saint_n paul_n or_o peter_n have_v deliver_v concern_v it_o be_v this_o that_o some_o time_n or_o other_o christian_n shall_v testify_v their_o mutual_a affection_n to_o each_o other_o by_o a_o kiss_n and_o that_o this_o kiss_v be_v not_o a_o wanton_a or_o dissemble_a one_o but_o a_o holy_a one_o or_o a_o true_a kiss_n of_o charity_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n it_o be_v still_o continue_v among_o christian_n moreover_o it_o be_v of_o itself_o a_o thing_n indifferent_a and_o only_o good_a as_o it_o be_v a_o indication_n of_o true_a charity_n and_o therefore_o be_v equivalent_o continue_v by_o all_o act_n of_o christian_a charity_n the_o love_n feast_n be_v design_v for_o the_o refreshment_n of_o the_o poor_a by_o what_o the_o rich_a bring_v to_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n to_o be_v eat_v by_o they_o at_o that_o feast_n of_o love_n and_o since_o it_o after_o happen_v through_o the_o looseness_n of_o christian_n that_o great_a disorder_n be_v commit_v in_o those_o feast_n they_o be_v make_v occasion_n not_o of_o division_n only_o but_o of_o intemperance_n and_o drunkenness_n they_o be_v universal_o disuse_v in_o the_o four_o century_n and_o convert_v into_o a_o more_o unexceptionable_a charity_n to_o be_v distribute_v among_o the_o poor_a according_a to_o that_o never_o fail_a rule_n that_o where_o the_o abuse_n be_v great_a than_o the_o use_n of_o a_o ceremony_n if_o the_o intend_a use_n may_v be_v obtain_v other_o wife_n abusus_fw-la tollit_fw-la usum_fw-la the_o abuse_n make_v it_o reasonable_a to_o cease_v the_o usage_n of_o that_o rite_n three_o if_o they_o have_v be_v universal_o neceive_v through_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n unto_o our_o day_n not_o that_o the_o neglect_n of_o this_o observation_n by_o any_o church_n in_o any_o age_n or_o age_n can_v have_v render_v this_o ordinance_n invalid_a or_o not_o oblige_v to_o posterity_n but_o because_o the_o continuance_n of_o it_o from_o the_o time_n of_o its_o first_o practice_n or_o institution_n to_o this_o present_a moment_n be_v a_o just_a presumption_n that_o all_o christian_n have_v be_v always_o satisfy_v and_o well_o assure_v of_o their_o obligation_n to_o comply_v with_o it_o and_o that_o no_o christian_n can_v have_v any_o cause_n to_o vary_v from_o it_o now_o all_o these_o three_o particular_n here_o meet_v for_o 1._o this_o christian_a festival_n have_v always_o be_v observe_v in_o all_o place●_n and_o throughout_o all_o age_n of_o the_o church_n 2._o it_o be_v observe_v by_o all_o christian_n for_o these_o very_a reason_n one_a that_o as_o the_o jew_n by_o observation_n of_o the_o sabbath_n profess_v to_o own_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o creation_n for_o their_o god_n and_o themselves_o to_o be_v his_o servant_n so_o they_o by_o observation_n of_o the_o lord_n christ_n may_v own_v he_o as_o their_o lord_n and_o master_n who_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o the_o new_a creation_n 2_o as_o they_o observe_v their_o sabbath_n in_o commemoration_n of_o the_o blessing_n procure_v to_o they_o by_o the_o creation_n so_o the_o christian_n observe_v the_o day_n of_o our_o lord_n resurrection_n in_o thankful_a remembrance_n of_o the_o inestimable_a blessing_n procure_v and_o consign_v to_o they_o by_o it_o viderentur_fw-la non_fw-la dominicum_fw-la diem_fw-la timerent_fw-la enim_fw-la ne_fw-la christiani_n viderentur_fw-la now_o sure_a this_o solemn_a act_n of_o own_v jesus_n for_o our_o lord_n on_o which_o account_n tertullian_n say_v the_o heathen_n fear_v to_o observe_v the_o lord_n day_n be_v a_o duty_n of_o the_o high_a moment_n and_o sure_o the_o blessing_n partly_o purchase_v partly_o confirm_v to_o we_o by_o our_o lord_n resurrection_n must_v as_o well_o deserve_v a_o day_n to_o be_v employ_v in_o solemn_a and_o in_o grateful_a commemoration_n of_o they_o as_o the_o mercy_n which_o the_o creation_n do_v confer_v upon_o mankind_n and_o so_o this_o constitution_n must_v be_v concern_v matter_n of_o great_a moment_n and_o three_o these_o be_v never_o fail_v reason_n and_o such_o as_o render_v it_o as_o necessary_a now_o to_o observe_v this_o day_n and_o will_v do_v so_o for_o ever_o and_o no_o man_n ever_o can_v refuse_v the_o observation_n of_o this_o day_n without_o be_v careless_a to_o own_o christ_n for_o his_o lord_n or_o to_o return_v thanks_o for_o the_o benefit_n of_o his_o resurrection_n or_o without_o oppose_v yea_o condemn_a the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n to_o this_o very_a day_n moreover_o this_o assertion_n be_v confirm_v by_o the_o concur_v suffrage_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n for_o justin_n m._n 99_o apol._n 2._o p._n 99_o speak_v of_o the_o observation_n of_o this_o day_n say_v that_o our_o lord_n arise_v from_o the_o dead_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d teach_v these_o thing_n 664._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d de_fw-fr laudibus_fw-la constant_n p._n 664._o eusebius_n say_v that_o christ_n have_v prescribe_v to_o all_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o world_n by_o sea_n and_o land_n that_o come_v together_o into_o one_o place_n they_o shall_v celebrate_v as_o a_o festival_n the_o lord_n day_n in_o time_n past_a say_v athanasius_n 1060._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d de_fw-fr cement_n p._n 1060._o the_o sabbath_n be_v of_o great_a account_n which_o solemnity_n the_o lord_n translate_v to_o the_o lord_n day_n nor_o do_v we_o set_v light_n by_o it_o without_o his_o authority_n in_o a_o word_n 118.24_o so_o athanas_n serm._n
the_o resurrect_a tom._n 2_o p._n 277._o ambros_n ep._n 83._o psalm_n 118.24_o the_o father_n general_o apply_v that_o passage_n of_o the_o psalmist_n this_o be_v the_o day_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v make_v let_v we_o be_v glad_a and_o rejoice_v in_o it_o to_o the_o lord_n day_n as_o make_v or_o institute_v by_o the_o lord_n and_o consecrate_a or_o sanctify_v by_o his_o resurrection_n other_o of_o they_o say_v that_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o lord_n day_n be_v a_o apostolical_a tradition_n and_o that_o they_o keep_v it_o as_o a_o holy_a day_n 436._o hesuch_n in_o levit_fw-la c._n 9_o leo._n ep._n 11._o ed._n quesnel_n p._n 436._o apostolorum_fw-la sequentes_fw-la traditionem_fw-la follow_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o apostle_n and_o apostolical_a man_n have_v decree_v dominicum_fw-la diem_fw-la religiosâ_fw-la solennitate_fw-la habendum_fw-la that_o the_o lord_n day_n be_v religious_o to_o be_v celebrate_v and_o sure_o it_o be_v enough_o to_o satisfy_v all_o conscientious_a christian_n in_o the_o observation_n of_o this_o day_n that_o it_o be_v consecrate_v to_o the_o service_n of_o our_o lord_n either_o by_o christ_n himself_o or_o his_o apostle_n and_o as_o such_o have_v be_v celebrate_v ever_o since_o by_o the_o perpetual_a practice_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n catholic_n especial_o if_o we_o consider_v what_o excellent_a name_n these_o ancient_a observer_n of_o it_o have_v ascribe_v unto_o it_o and_o what_o great_a dignity_n they_o have_v put_v upon_o it_o calling_z it_o the_o queen_n of_o day_n the_o princess_n and_o the_o principal_a of_o day_n a_o royal_a day_n high_a than_o the_o high_a the_o first_o fruit_n of_o the_o day_n whereas_o have_v they_o conceive_v it_o only_o a_o humane_a ordinance_n it_o can_v not_o have_v deserve_v these_o title_n above_o other_o day_n ordain_v by_o the_o church_n in_o fine_a how_o dangerous_a it_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o public_a exercise_n of_o christian_a religion_n shall_v depend_v upon_o so_o weak_a a_o foundation_n as_o humane_a authority_n which_o may_v alter_v its_o own_o constitution_n and_o be_v subject_a to_o manifold_a error_n i_o leave_v to_o the_o prudent_a and_o judicious_a reader_n to_o consider_v let_v then_o the_o romanist_n show_v three_o text_n of_o scripture_n expound_v constant_o in_o that_o sense_n by_o the_o whole_a church_n church_n 6_o which_o confirm_v any_o of_o their_o doctrine_n let_v they_o show_v we_o the_o name_n of_o any_o of_o those_o practice_n of_o they_o which_o we_o condemn_v in_o scripture_n and_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o century_n let_v they_o give_v clear_a evidence_n from_o their_o write_n that_o such_o practice_n be_v receive_v in_o the_o apostle_n day_n throughout_o the_o christian_a world_n no_o church_n no_o christian_a writer_n ever_o except_v against_o they_o or_o mention_v they_o as_o new_o introduce_v custom_n let_v they_o show_v we_o plain_a expression_n from_o they_o declare_v that_o they_o be_v institute_v either_o by_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n and_o that_o they_o practise_v they_o illorum_fw-la sequentes_fw-la traditionem_fw-la in_o compliance_n with_o their_o tradition_n and_o then_o we_o shall_v no_o long_o question_n or_o condemn_v they_o have_v thus_o answer_v mr._n m_o m_o s._n argument_n against_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o scripture_n from_o this_o head_n i_o retort_v it_o thus_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v do_v to_o salvation_n salvation_n 7_o which_o leave_v undo_v 204._o pag._n 204._o cause_v damnation_n but_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o sunday_n command_v the_o abstain_v from_o all_o servile_a work_n if_o neglect_v or_o leave_v undo_v bring_v damnation_n therefore_o to_o observe_v in_o this_o manner_n the_o sunday_n be_v a_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o yet_o this_o point_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v clear_o put_v down_o in_o tradition_n that_o stand_v mere_o to_o the_o sole_a judgement_n of_o it_o we_o can_v clear_o show_v more_o declaration_n for_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o work_v on_o the_o sunday_n than_o for_o the_o unlawfulness_n thereof_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n only_o say_v 29._o can._n 29._o that_o christian_n shall_v rest_v on_o the_o lord_n day_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d if_o they_o can_v well_o know_v that_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a for_o many_o of_o they_o so_o to_o do_v some_o of_o they_o be_v servant_n to_o pagan_a master_n some_o condemn_v to_o labour_n in_o the_o mine_n and_o toil_n in_o galley_n when_o their_o lord_n require_v they_o and_o yet_o we_o find_v not_o in_o all_o ecclesiastical_a history_n those_o christian_n ever_o then_o refuse_v to_o labour_n upon_o this_o account_n and_o therefore_o balsamon_n upon_o this_o canon_n say_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o do_v not_o enjoin_v this_o as_o a_o thing_n necessary_a but_o add_v if_o they_o can_v let_v they_o do_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o if_o any_o one_o work_n on_o the_o lord_n day_n out_o of_o poverty_n or_o any_o other_o necessity_n he_o will_v not_o be_v condemn_v and_o zonaras_n on_o the_o same_o canon_n add_v that_o the_o civil_a law_n command_v all_o without_o excuse_n to_o rest_v upon_o the_o lord_n day_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d except_v husbandman_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o it_o permit_v they_o to_o work_v on_o the_o lord_n day_n provide_v that_o they_o find_v no_o other_o day_n so_o fit_a fo●_n their_o work_n that_o which_o he_o say_v touch_v the_o civil_a law_n feriis_fw-la cod._n just_o l._n 2._o cod._n de_fw-fr feriis_fw-la be_v evident_a from_o that_o law_n of_o constantine_n where_o command_v all_o man_n to_o rest_n on_o the_o lord_n day_n he_o except_v rural_a labour_n in_o which_o delay_n may_v be_v very_o prejudicial_a to_o they_o 4._o enchirid_a tit._n 4._o which_o law_n hermenopulus_fw-la give_v we_o thus_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d on_o the_o lord_n day_n and_o other_o festival_n let_v the_o judge_n and_o other_o rest_n except_v only_a husbandman_n and_o none_o of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n live_v in_o those_o day_n or_o in_o the_o follow_a century_n reprove_v these_o law_n or_o speak_v any_o thing_n to_o signify_v that_o they_o esteem_v they_o profane_a 64._o epitaph_n paulae_fw-la ad_fw-la eustoch_n f._n 64._o on_o the_o contrary_a saint_n jerom_n tell_v we_o that_o paula_n with_o all_o the_o virgin_n and_o widow_n that_o live_v at_o bethlehem_n in_o a_o cloister_n with_o she_o repair_v to_o the_o church_n on_o the_o lord_n day_n a●que_fw-la inde_fw-la pariter_fw-la revertentes_fw-la instabant_fw-la operi_fw-la distributo_fw-la and_o return_v thence_o they_o all_o fall_v to_o their_o work_n and_o make_v clothes_n for_o themselves_o or_o other_o and_o last_o last_o 8_o let_v it_o be_v observe_v that_o though_o i_o very_o believe_v this_o day_n to_o be_v of_o divine_a institution_n and_o jure_fw-la positivo_fw-la to_o be_v observe_v yet_o be_o i_o far_o from_o think_v that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n so_o to_o do_v and_o much_o less_o to_o abstain_v whole_o from_o work_v that_o day_n or_o that_o if_o any_o church_n shall_v rather_o think_v it_o fit_a to_o keep_v another_o day_n in_o honour_n of_o our_o lord_n or_o that_o if_o any_o christian_n shall_v think_v as_o some_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n seem_v to_o have_v do_v that_o under_o the_o gospel_n dispensation_n there_o be_v no_o difference_n of_o day_n but_o that_o the_o christian_n shall_v observe_v every_o day_n as_o a_o spiritual_a sabbath_n they_o shall_v be_v damn_v or_o even_o unchurch_v for_o that_o opinion_n and_o therefore_o this_o be_v like_a unto_o most_o other_o instance_n urge_v by_o mr._n m._n impertinent_a and_o such_o as_o reach_v not_o unto_o the_o question_n viz._n whether_o the_o scripture_n be_v deficient_a in_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v or_o practise_v to_o salvation_n to_o proceed_v to_o the_o second_o question_n touch_v our_o freedom_n from_o any_o obligation_n to_o observe_v the_o sabbath_n enjoin_v in_o the_o four_o commandment_n i_o say_v that_o though_o tradition_n seem_v not_o sufficient_o to_o do_v it_o scripture_n afford_v sufficient_a evidence_n that_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o seven_o day_n from_o the_o creation_n be_v only_o a_o ceremonial_a precept_n and_o therefore_o not_o oblige_v to_o the_o christian_a that_o be_v the_o observation_n of_o the_o seven_o day_n from_o the_o creation_n as_o a_o day_n whole_o to_o be_v set_v apart_o for_o rest_n from_o bodily_a labour_n according_a to_o the_o four_o commandment_n be_v not_o enjoin_v by_o a_o moral_a law_n or_o by_o a_o law_n command_v what_o be_v natural_o good_a antecedent_o to_o the_o command_n of_o the_o lawgiver_n or_o which_o can_v be_v resolve_v into_o any_o principle_n or_o dictate_v of_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n imprint_v in_o man_n heart_n at_o the_o creation_n but_o that_o it_o be_v a_o law_n which_o only_o
do_v oblige_v the_o jew_n and_o jewish_a proselyte_n to_o rest_v from_o labour_n on_o that_o day_n lay_v no_o obligation_n on_o the_o christian_a so_o to_o do_v and_o first_o first_o 9_o that_o this_o command_n to_o observe_v the_o seven_o day_n from_o the_o creation_n can_v be_v no_o moral_a precept_n oblige_v all_o mankind_n be_v evident_a 1._o from_o the_o reason_n there_o assign_v of_o it_o because_o god_n have_v make_v the_o world_n in_o six_o day_n rest_v the_o seven_o and_o that_o therefore_o the_o lord_n bless_v the_o seven_o day_n and_o hallow_v it_o now_o evident_a it_o be_v that_o no_o man_n by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n can_v discern_v that_o god_n employ_v six_o day_n in_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n or_o that_o he_o rest_v on_o the_o seven_o day_n only_o from_o his_o labour_n no_o humane_a reason_n can_v with_o any_o certainty_n infer_v that_o because_o he_o rest_v from_o his_o labour_n on_o this_o day_n we_o shall_v rest_v also_o on_o it_o and_o so_o no_o man_n without_o a_o revelation_n can_v be_v acquaint_v with_o these_o ground_n for_o observation_n of_o this_o day_n moreover_o no_o man_n by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n can_v know_v that_o time_n ought_v rather_o to_o be_v compute_v by_o week_n or_o by_o the_o number_n seven_o than_o any_o other_o number_n and_o much_o less_o that_o one_o day_n in_o seven_o precise_o rather_o than_o in_o ten_o shall_v be_v dedicate_v to_o god_n service_n this_o be_v neither_o a_o principle_n evident_a in_o itself_o nor_o derivable_a from_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v so_o and_o much_o less_o that_o the_o last_o of_o seven_o day_n shall_v be_v keep_v holy_a rather_o than_o the_o first_o or_o any_o other_o of_o the_o seven_o no_o day_n be_v more_o holy_a than_o another_o by_o inherent_a sanctity_n but_o only_o by_o god_n free_a and_o arbitrary_a injunction_n to_o apply_v it_o or_o consecrate_v it_o to_o religious_a use_v and_o sure_a god_n notwithstanding_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n in_o six_o day_n have_v he_o so_o please_v may_v have_v design_v any_o of_o those_o day_n for_o his_o religious_a worship_n 4thly_a such_o precept_n as_o be_v pure_o moral_a and_o be_v injunction_n of_o thing_n good_a antecedent_o to_o the_o command_n can_v in_o no_o time_n or_o case_n be_v violate_v or_o transgress_v whereas_o our_o lord_n express_o have_v declare_v that_o this_o law_n touch_v the_o sabbath_n in_o many_o case_n may_v be_v violate_v and_o therefore_o chrysostom_n observe_v that_o of_o those_o natural_a law_n thou_o shall_v not_o kill_v or_o commit_v adultery_n etc._n etc._n god_n give_v no_o reason_n because_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n teach_v they_o but_o when_o it_o please_v he_o to_o prescribe_v the_o observation_n of_o the_o sabbath_n day_n according_a to_o the_o four_o commandment_n he_o add_v these_o reason_n 30._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d stat._n orat._n 12._o tom._n 6._o ed._n savil._n p._n 542._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d theod._n in_o ez._n 30._o because_o he_o rest_v on_o the_o seven_o day_n from_o all_o his_o work_n and_o because_o thou_o be_v a_o bondman_n in_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n as_o know_v this_o commandment_n be_v not_o primogeneal_a nor_o make_v know_v to_o we_o by_o the_o dictate_v of_o our_o conscience_n but_o be_v temporary_a and_o particular_a i._n e._n give_v only_o to_o the_o jewish_a nation_n according_a to_o those_o word_n of_o moses_n i_o have_v give_v you_o the_o sabbath_n exod._n xuj_o 19_o second_o second_o 10_o this_o clear_o do_v appear_v from_o that_o defence_n our_o saviour_n make_v of_o his_o disciple_n when_o they_o be_v censure_v by_o the_o pharisee_n for_o violate_v the_o sabbath_n by_o pluck_v ear_n of_o corn_n xij_o matth._n xij_o and_o rub_v they_o for_o our_o lord_n justify_v their_o action_n 1._o by_o the_o example_n of_o david_n and_o his_o man_n 3._o vers_fw-la 3._o who_o be_v hungry_a eat_v the_o show_n bread_n which_o by_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n be_v to_o be_v eat_v only_o by_o the_o priest_n now_o in_o all_o argument_n à_fw-la pari_fw-la or_o take_v from_o example_n the_o ground_n or_o the_o foundation_n of_o they_o must_v be_v this_o in_o paribus_fw-la par_fw-fr ratio_fw-la the_o reason_n be_v the_o same_o where_o the_o case_n be_v so_o and_o so_o in_o argument_n draw_v from_o such_o action_n the_o case_n must_v be_v still_o alike_o in_o all_o considerable_a circumstance_n and_o so_o it_o will_v be_v in_o the_o example_n here_o produce_v provide_v that_o the_o rest_n enjoin_v in_o the_o four_o commandment_n be_v ceremonial_a for_o then_o the_o case_n run_v thus_o i_o and_o my_o man_n and_o david_n and_o his_o man_n be_v both_o hungry_a do_v that_o which_o be_v forbid_v by_o a_o ceremonial_a law_n of_o moses_n if_o therefore_o david_n and_o his_o man_n be_v blameless_a i_o and_o my_o disciple_n must_v be_v so_o but_o if_o the_o rest_v enjoin_v by_o the_o four_o commandment_n have_v be_v moral_a it_o be_v evident_a the_o case_n can_v not_o be_v alike_o since_o david_n and_o his_o man_n do_v only_o violate_v a_o ceremonial_a precept_n but_o christ_n disciple_n do_v transgress_v a_o moral_a precept_n so_o that_o we_o stand_v oblige_v to_o confess_v the_o rest_n enjoin_v by_o the_o four_o commandment_n be_v ceremonial_a or_o that_o our_o saviour_n be_v argument_n be_v unconcluding_a and_o unsound_a which_o it_o be_v blasphemy_n to_o assert_v again_o our_o saviour_n argue_v that_o his_o disciple_n be_v not_o to_o be_v accuse_v of_o do_v evil_a verse_n 7_o though_o they_o do_v not_o observe_v the_o rest_n require_v on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n because_o god_n have_v declare_v he_o will_v have_v mercy_n and_o not_o sacrifice_n that_o be_v he_o will_v have_v work_n of_o mercy_n which_o be_v moral_a duty_n to_o be_v prefer_v before_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v but_o ceremonial_n the_o feed_n of_o the_o hungry_a body_n must_v therefore_o be_v compare_v to_o work_n of_o mercy_n the_o violate_v the_o rest_n prescribe_v by_o the_o four_o commandment_n be_v that_o which_o be_v compare_v to_o offer_v sacrifice_n since_o then_o the_o law_n concern_v sacrifice_n most_o certain_o be_v ceremonial_a the_o law_n concern_v the_o sabbatick_a rest_n must_v be_v so_o also_o second_o second_o 11_o this_o may_v be_v fair_o gather_v from_o these_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n paul_n to_o the_o galatian_n argum._n 2_o 11._o gal._n 4.10_o 11._o you_o observe_v day_n and_o month_n and_o time_n and_o year_n i_o be_o afraid_a of_o you_o lest_o i_o may_v have_v labour_v among_o you_o in_o vain_a whereobserve_v first_o that_o the_o day_n and_o month_n the_o time_n and_o year_n here_o mention_v be_v only_a jewish_a day_n and_o time_n as_o will_v appear_v first_o from_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v to_o show_v the_o christian_a gentile_n be_v exempt_a from_o any_o obligation_n to_o observe_v the_o law_n of_o moses_n for_o this_o be_v the_o chief_a design_n of_o that_o epistle_n the_o day_n forbid_v here_o must_v be_v the_o day_n and_o time_n command_v by_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n 2_o by_o observation_n of_o those_o day_n and_o time_n etc._n etc._n they_o be_v here_o say_v to_o be_v willing_a to_o return_v again_o to_o the_o service_n of_o weak_a and_o beggarly_a element_n now_o these_o element_n to_o which_o they_o be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v in_o bondage_n be_v the_o mosaic_a ceremony_n v._o 3_o and_o 4._o for_o we_o say_v he_o when_o we_o be_v child_n be_v in_o bondage_n to_o the_o element_n of_o the_o world_n but_o when_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n be_v come_v god_n send_v to_o redeem_v those_o that_o be_v under_o the_o law_n from_o any_o far_a bondage_n to_o it_o second_o observe_v that_o the_o month_n time_n and_o year_n here_o mention_v do_v comprehend_v all_o other_o jewish_a festival_n beside_o the_o sabbath_n for_o the_o month_n signify_v their_o new_a noon_n the_o time_n the_o set_a time_n of_o go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n the_o year_n their_o solemn_a anniversary_n feast_n which_o constant_o return_v at_o such_o a_o time_n of_o year_n or_o after_o such_o a_o period_n of_o year_n and_o therefore_o the_o day_n here_o mention_v can_v only_o signify_v the_o sabbath_n day_n observe_v by_o the_o jew_n and_o so_o saint_n jerom_n and_o saint_n chrysostom_n interpret_v the_o place_n three_o observe_v that_o the_o jewish_a sabbath_n or_o the_o day_n of_o rest_n appoint_v by_o the_o four_o commandment_n be_v certain_o the_o seven_o day_n from_o the_o creation_n as_o be_v evident_a 1._o from_o the_o reason_n there_o assign_v you_o shall_v keep_v the_o sabbath_n for_o in_o six_o day_n the_o lord_n make_v heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o rest_v the_o seven_o day_n 2._o that_o be_v the_o day_n which_o the_o lord_n bless_a and_o sanctify_v if_o therefore_o that_o be_v abrogate_a and_o not_o to_o
19.10_o vers_fw-la 30._o vers_fw-la 37._o v._o g._n thou_o shall_v not_o glean_v thy_o vineyard_n neither_o shall_v thou_o gather_v every_o grape_n of_o thy_o vineyard_n but_o thou_o shall_v leave_v they_o for_o the_o poor_a i_o be_o the_o lord_n thou_o shall_v reverence_n my_o sanctuary_n i_o be_o the_o lord_n you_o shall_v observe_v all_o my_o statute_n and_o all_o my_o judgement_n and_o do_v they_o i_o be_o the_o lord_n now_o god_n be_v still_o the_o lord_n of_o christian_n but_o hence_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v oblige_v to_o observe_v these_o ceremonial_a precept_n enjoin_v for_o reason_n still_o remain_v and_o equal_o concern_v christian_n it_o therefore_o can_v rational_o be_v conclude_v that_o christian_n be_v oblige_v to_o observe_v the_o rest_n enjoin_v in_o the_o four_o commandment_n because_o it_o be_v command_v for_o a_o reason_n that_o do_v still_o remain_v 4._o hence_o we_o may_v easy_o discern_v the_o reason_n why_o the_o christian_n still_o observe_v one_o day_n in_o seven_o and_o also_o why_o they_o choose_v to_o observe_v the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n and_o not_o the_o last_o for_o when_o christianity_n begin_v it_o have_v two_o sort_n of_o adversary_n to_o encounter_v viz._n the_o unbelieve_a jew_n and_o the_o idolatrous_a gentile_n and_o therefore_o as_o a_o testimony_n against_o the_o heathen_n who_o worship_v false_a god_n that_o be_v the_o god_n who_o make_v not_o heaven_n and_o earth_n they_o choose_v one_o day_n in_o seven_o to_o signify_v they_o worship_v the_o true_a god_n and_o the_o creator_n of_o all_o thing_n but_o then_o they_o choose_v the_o first_o of_o these_o seven_o day_n to_o testify_v against_o the_o jew_n that_o they_o worship_v this_o god_n not_o now_o as_o one_o in_o covenant_n with_o the_o jew_n or_o as_o their_o redeemer_n out_o of_o egypt_n but_o as_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o through_o he_o our_o most_o love_a father_n and_o to_o own_v themselves_o the_o servant_n of_o that_o god_n who_o on_o the_o morning_n of_o that_o day_n vanquish_v satan_n the_o spiritual_a pharaoh_n and_o redeem_v we_o from_o our_o spiritual_a thraldom_n by_o raise_v jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n from_o the_o dead_a beget_v we_o instead_o of_o a_o earthly_a canaan_n to_o a_o inheritance_n incorruptible_a in_o the_o heaven_n 15._o dr._n spencer_n de_fw-fr legibus_fw-la hebr._fw-la mr._n mede_n disc_n 15._o this_o account_n of_o this_o change_n of_o the_o day_n i_o have_v borrow_v from_o two_o very_a learned_a and_o ingenious_a man_n and_o for_o the_o further_a illustration_n and_o confirmation_n of_o it_o lot_z it_o be_v observe_v 1._o that_o the_o jew_n never_o worship_v god_n or_o put_v up_o their_o address_n to_o he_o under_o the_o name_n of_o father_n as_o we_o christian_n by_o our_o lord_n be_v teach_v and_o command_v to_o do_v in_o these_o word_n when_o you_o pray_v say_v our_o father_n this_o be_v as_o the_o apostle_n have_v observe_v the_o peculiar_a privilege_n of_o christian_n above_o the_o jew_n 8.15_o rom._n 8.15_o that_o we_o have_v not_o receive_v as_o they_o the_o spirit_n of_o bondage_n unto_o fear_n but_o the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n whereby_o we_o cry_v abba_n father_n they_o be_v it_o be_v confess_v child_n also_o 4._o gal._n 4.1_o 4._o but_o nothing_o differ_v from_o servant_n as_o be_v child_n in_o their_o minority_n and_o so_o in_o bondage_n to_o the_o rudiment_n of_o the_o world_n whereas_o we_o have_v receive_v through_o faith_n in_o christ_n jesus_n the_o adoption_n of_o son_n god_n have_v send_v forth_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o son_n into_o our_o heart_n cry_v abba_n father_n it_o be_v the_o say_n of_o the_o jew_n that_o a_o servant_n can_v say_v unto_o his_o lord_n abba_n this_o be_v a_o word_n proper_a to_o a_o son_n and_o only_o use_v by_o natural_a or_o adopt_a son_n we_o be_v therefore_o all_o the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o his_o adopt_a son_n through_o faith_n in_o christ_n jesus_n 3.26_o joh._n 1.12_o gal._n 3.26_o we_o have_v through_o he_o receive_v this_o privilege_n to_o address_v ourselves_o unto_o he_o by_o the_o name_n of_o abba_n or_o our_o father_n and_o yet_o more_o certain_o be_v it_o peculiar_a to_o the_o christian_n to_o own_v he_o as_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v his_o usual_a name_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o to_o address_v unto_o he_o in_o and_o by_o that_o name_n 2_o observe_v that_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o lord_n christ_n be_v general_o ascribe_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n to_o god_n the_o father_n and_o when_o our_o lord_n declare_v that_o he_o have_v power_n to_o lay_v down_o his_o life_n 10.18_o joh._n 10.18_o and_o take_v it_o up_o again_o he_o add_v immediate_o this_o commandment_n have_v i_o receive_v of_o my_o father_n hence_o do_v the_o holy_a ghost_n assure_v we_o that_o god_n the_o father_n say_v unto_o he_o thou_o be_v my_o son_n 13.33_o act._n 13.33_o this_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o for_o this_o as_o well_o as_o other_o reason_n that_o he_o have_v raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a and_o that_o he_o be_v declare_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n with_o power_n 1.4_o rom._n 1.4_o by_o his_o raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a 3_o observe_v that_o our_o lord_n resurrection_n be_v represent_v as_o the_o great_a foundation_n of_o all_o the_o mercy_n derive_v to_o we_o from_o our_o saviour_n as_o be_v that_o by_o which_o they_o be_v complete_v or_o confirm_v to_o we_o 21._o 1_o pet._n 3_o 21._o our_o baptism_n do_v save_v we_o say_v st._n peter_n through_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n jesus_n our_o freedom_n from_o condemnation_n be_v ascribe_v rather_o unto_o his_o resurrection_n than_o his_o death_n as_o in_o that_o question_n 8.34_o rom._n 8.34_o who_o be_v he_o that_o condemn_v we_o it_o be_v christ_n that_o die_v yea_o rather_o that_o be_v rise_v again_o our_o justification_n be_v ascribe_v to_o it_o 4.25_o rom._n 4.25_o for_o christ_n be_v deliver_v for_o our_o offence_n and_o rise_v again_o for_o our_o justification_n from_o it_o derive_v our_o hope_n of_o glory_n 1.3_o 1_o pet._n 1.3_o for_o we_o be_v beget_v to_o a_o lively_a hope_n through_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n from_o the_o dead_a of_o a_o inheritance_n incorruptible_a and_o undefiled_a reserve_v in_o the_o heaven_n for_o we_o in_o a_o word_n it_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o our_o whole_a faith_n 15.14_o 1_o cor._n 15.14_o for_o if_o christ_n be_v not_o rise_v than_o our_o faith_n be_v vain_a since_o then_o these_o blessing_n so_o far_o exceed_v those_o of_o the_o creation_n or_o of_o the_o jew_n deliverance_n from_o egypt_n be_v procure_v to_o we_o by_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o lord_n 1.19_o ephes_n 1.19_o which_o be_v effect_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n the_o father_n since_o he_o become_v the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o through_o he_o our_o father_n by_o raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a there_o seem_v great_a reason_n why_o this_o day_n shall_v be_v appoint_v as_o the_o day_n in_o which_o the_o christian_a shall_v acknowledge_v himself_o a_o worshipper_n of_o god_n his_o father_n through_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n moreover_o this_o day_n be_v peculiar_o style_v the_o lordsday_n it_o be_v high_o probable_a it_o be_v observe_v by_o christian_n primary_o in_o honour_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o through_o he_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o father_n to_o who_o our_o prayer_n our_o praise_n and_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n be_v offer_v on_o that_o day_n through_o christ_n and_o for_o illustration_n of_o this_o matter_n let_v it_o be_v observe_v 1._o that_o the_o time_n of_o the_o messiah_n be_v still_o represent_v by_o the_o jew_n under_o the_o notion_n of_o holam_fw-la habba_n or_o the_o world_n to_o come_v and_o the_o work_n of_o the_o messiah_n as_o a_o new_a creation_n or_o a_o creation_n of_o new_a heaven_n and_o a_o new_a earth_n the_o lord_n god_n shall_v slay_v you_o and_o call_v his_o servant_n by_o another_o name_n 66.22_o isa_n 65.15_o 17._o isa_n 66.22_o for_o behold_v i_o create_v new_a heaven_n and_o a_o new_a earth_n and_o the_o former_a shall_v not_o be_v remember_v nor_o come_v into_o my_o mind_n according_o 2.5_o heb._n 2.5_o the_o author_n to_o the_o hebrew_n style_v this_o new_a dispensation_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o world_n to_o come_v and_o they_o who_o then_o enjoy_v the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n or_o other_o extraordinary_a operation_n be_v say_v to_o have_v taste_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o power_n of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v 6.5_o heb._n 6.5_o and_o the_o renovation_n of_o christian_n by_o this_o dispensation_n be_v represent_v as_o a_o new_a creation_n wrought_v
by_o christ_n 2.10_o ephes_n 2.10_o for_o we_o be_v his_o workmanship_n create_v in_o christ_n jesus_n to_o good_a word_n he_o have_v abolish_v the_o law_n of_o commandment_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 15._o ver._n 15._o that_o he_o may_v create_v those_o two_o the_o jew_n and_o gentile_a into_o one_o new_a man_n in_o himself_o so_o that_o now_o if_o any_o man_n be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n he_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o new_a creation_n 5.17_o 2_o cor._n 5.17_o old_a thing_n be_v pass_v away_o that_o all_o thing_n may_v become_v new_a in_o he_o for_o in_o christ_n jesus_n nothing_o avail_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 6.15_o gal._n 6.15_o but_o this_o new_a creation_n 2_o observe_v that_o this_o new_a world_n and_o new_a creation_n 336_o hieron_n &_o theodoret_n in_o isa_n 9.6_o euseb_n they_fw-mi evan._n l._n 7_o p._n 336_o as_o it_o be_v make_v by_o christ_n so_o be_v it_o immediate_o subject_v to_o he_o he_o by_o the_o septuagint_n be_v style_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o prince_n of_o peace_n the_o father_n of_o the_o age_n to_o come_v to_o he_o and_o not_o unto_o the_o angel_n 9_o heb._n 2.5_o ver._n 8_o 9_o have_v god_n subject_v this_o world_n to_o come_v he_o have_v crown_v he_o with_o glory_n and_o honour_n and_o set_v he_o over_o the_o work_n of_o his_o own_o hand_n and_o have_v put_v all_o thing_n in_o subjection_n under_o his_o foot_n 11._o joh._n 5.23_o phil._n 2.10_o 11._o declare_v that_o he_o will_v have_v all_o man_n honour_v the_o son_n even_o as_o they_o honour_v the_o father_n and_o determine_v that_o at_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n every_o knee_n shall_v bow_v and_o every_o tongue_n shall_v confess_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o lord_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o father_n moreover_o this_o power_n he_o receive_v at_o the_o resurrection_n have_v then_o 28.18_o mat._n 28.18_o as_o he_o say_v all_o power_n both_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n commit_v to_o he_o be_v then_o say_v the_o apostle_n peter_n make_v both_o lord_n and_o christ_n 2.36_o act._n 2.36_o and_o exalt_v to_o be_v a_o prince_n and_o a_o saviour_n whence_o he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o first_o bear_v from_o the_o dead_a 1.10_o col._n 1.10_o that_o he_o may_v be_v in_o all_o thing_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o preeminent_a 3_o observe_v that_o christian_n be_v represent_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o those_o who_o do_v succeed_v the_o jew_n in_o all_o their_o covenant-relation_n 11.19_o rom._n 11.19_o they_o be_v break_v off_o from_o the_o true_a olive_n and_o we_o graft_v in_o and_o be_v therefore_o a_o choose_a generation_n a_o peculiar_a people_n a_o royal_a priesthood_n a_o holy_a nation_n to_o show_v forth_o the_o virtue_n of_o he_o who_o call_v we_o from_o darkness_n to_o light_n 9_o 1_o pet._n 2_o 9_o and_o from_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n unto_o god._n this_o covenant-relation_n they_o enjoy_v by_o virtue_n of_o that_o jesus_n who_o be_v the_o mediator_n of_o a_o better_a covenant_n and_o who_o give_v himself_o for_o we_o that_o he_o may_v redeem_v we_o 2.14_o tit._n 2.14_o and_o purify_v we_o to_o himself_o a_o peculiar_a people_n in_o fine_a the_o virtue_n for_o which_o we_o be_v to_o celebrate_v his_o praise_n be_v our_o redemption_n by_o he_o from_o the_o wrath_n to_o come_v from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n from_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n from_o the_o dominion_n of_o sin_n our_o adoption_n our_o receive_n of_o the_o spirit_n by_o which_o we_o be_v enable_v to_o cry_n abba_n father_n and_o as_o a_o consequent_a of_o that_o our_o be_v heir_n of_o glory_n and_o all_o these_o mercy_n as_o i_o have_v observe_v already_o be_v confirm_v by_o and_o be_v complete_v to_o we_o at_o his_o resurrection_n if_o then_o in_o this_o oeconomy_n there_o be_v a_o new_a world_n and_o a_o new_a creation_n a_o new_a lord_n to_o who_o this_o world_n be_v subject_a and_o who_o be_v to_o be_v honour_v and_o worship_v as_o the_o former_a be_v though_o to_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o former_a if_o there_o be_v a_o new_a covenant_n establish_v in_o his_o blood_n and_o by_o which_o he_o have_v purify_v to_o himself_o a_o peculiar_a people_n if_o to_o this_o lord_n all_o power_n both_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n be_v give_v by_o the_o creator_n of_o the_o world_n unto_o this_o very_a end_n that_o all_o man_n may_v thus_o honour_v he_o if_o this_o lord_n have_v procure_v for_o we_o a_o redemption_n from_o the_o power_n of_o sin_n and_o satan_n much_o more_o valuable_a than_o the_o redemption_n of_o the_o jewish_a nation_n from_o egyptian_a thraldom_n if_o by_o his_o resurrection_n we_o be_v all_o beget_v to_o the_o lively_a hope_n of_o a_o much_o better_a canaan_n be_v there_o not_o cause_v sufficient_a for_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o day_n appoint_v for_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o mercy_n of_o the_o old_a creation_n and_o of_o deliverance_n from_o the_o jewish_a thraldom_n and_o the_o agnize_n of_o the_o author_n of_o it_o as_o the_o lord_n that_o sanctify_a they_o to_o a_o day_n appoint_v for_o celebration_n of_o the_o new_a creation_n and_o the_o deliverance_n accomplish_v by_o it_o and_o the_o acknowledge_v the_o author_n of_o it_o as_o the_o christian_n lord_n be_v there_o not_o cause_v sufficient_a why_o christian_n shall_v observe_v the_o day_n on_o which_o their_o lord_n do_v triumph_n over_o their_o spiritual_a pharaoh_n redeem_v they_o from_o spiritual_a thraldom_n beget_v they_o to_o a_o lively_a hope_n of_o a_o spiritual_a canaan_n ●nd_v by_o the_o observation_n of_o it_o shall_v profess_v that_o they_o be_v christian_n and_o 〈◊〉_d that_o jesus_n who_o be_v lord_n of_o all_o thing_n can_v we_o refuse_v to_o give_v this_o honour_n to_o the_o son_n who_o be_v by_o god_n appointment_n to_o be_v honour_v as_o the_o father_n and_o who_o we_o do_v thus_o worship_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o father_n mr._n m._n in_o behalf_n of_o the_o sabbatarian_o object_n 18.20_o object_n 15._o obj._n 2._o 2._o 9_o p._n 207_o 208._o mat._n 19.17_o 18._o mark_v 10.19_o luk._n 18.20_o that_o ou●_n lord_n say_v to_o one_o inquire_v of_o he_o what_o good_a thing_n shall_v i_o do_v to_o have_v eternal_a life_n if_o thou_o will_v enter_v into_o life_n keep_v the_o commandment_n and_o when_o he_o still_o inquire_v of_o he_o which_o commandment_n do_v clear_o explicate_v himself_o to_o mean_v all_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o decalogue_n give_v by_o moses_n whence_o he_o inser_n that_o the_o author_n of_o our_o new_a law_n with_o his_o own_o mouth_n require_v no_o less_o the_o keep_n of_o this_o commandment_n of_o the_o saturday_n sabbath_n as_o necessary_a for_o our_o entrance_n into_o life_n everlasting_a than_o the_o keep_n any_o other_o commandment_n answ_n 1._o this_o assertion_n be_v express_o false_a and_o manifest_o contradict_v the_o text_n for_o in_o none_o of_o these_o evangelist_n do_v our_o lord_n mention_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o first_o table_n of_o which_o that_o of_o the_o sabbath_n be_v one_o but_o only_o do_v enumerate_v those_o which_o belong_v to_o the_o second_o 2_o his_o inference_n be_v also-false_a for_o christ_n there_o speak_v not_o of_o what_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o be_v observe_v by_o the_o christian_a after_o his_o resurrection_n but_o of_o what_o be_v necessary_a then_o to_o be_v observe_v by_o the_o jew_n speak_v there_o to_o a_o jewish_a governor_n who_o be_v acquaint_v already_o with_o the_o law_n of_o which_o he_o speak_v and_o have_v observe_v it_o from_o his_o youth_n mr._n m._n object_n that_o st._n paul_n preach_v every_o saturday_n 209._o saturday_n 16._o obj._n 3_o act._n 18._o p_o 209._o for_o he_o dispute_v in_o the_o synagogue_n every_o sabbath_n answ_n 1._o to_o this_o i_o answer_v first_o that_o this_o apostle_n have_v declare_v that_o the_o seventh-day_n sabbath_n be_v part_n of_o that_o hand-writing_n of_o ordinance_n which_o christ_n take_v away_o and_o be_v a_o shadow_n of_o good_a thing_n exhibit_v by_o christ_n and_o so_o he_o plain_o do_v discharge_v the_o christian_a from_o observation_n of_o the_o rest_v require_v by_o the_o four_o commandment_n on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n 2_o that_o he_o or_o any_o of_o his_o brethren_n preach_v the_o gospel_n in_o the_o jewish_a synagogue_n upon_o that_o day_n can_v be_v no_o evidence_n that_o they_o esteem_v the_o rest_n require_v on_o that_o day_n oblige_v to_o the_o christian_a but_o only_o that_o they_o prudential_o comply_v with_o jew_n and_o proselyte_n in_o come_v to_o their_o assembly_n on_o that_o day_n that_o so_o they_o may_v have_v more_o familiar_a access_n unto_o they_o and_o better_a opportunity_n to_o instruct_v they_o in_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o therefore_o in_o pursuance_n of_o the_o same_o good_a end_n st._n paul_n who_o be_v most_o free_a
but_o never_o to_o tradition_n the_o prophet_n do_v exhort_v they_o for_o their_o direction_n to_o repair_v to_o the_o law_n 4.4_o esai_n 8.20.34.16_o mal._n 4.4_o and_o to_o the_o testimony_n to_o the_o book_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o remember_v the_o law_n of_o moses_n which_o he_o command_v they_o in_o horeb_n for_o all_o israel_n with_o the_o statute_n and_o judgement_n as_o their_o only_a certain_a rule_n and_o direction_n now_o that_o the_o ordinary_a succession_n of_o prophet_n be_v to_o cease_v from_o the_o day_n of_o malachy_n to_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n whereas_o have_v oral_a tradition_n also_o be_v their_o rule_n the_o prophet_n must_v have_v have_v like_o reason_n to_o call_v upon_o they_o to_o remember_v that_o moreover_o god_n only_o call_v upon_o they_o by_o moses_n to_o do_v all_o the_o word_n of_o this_o law_n which_o be_v write_v in_o this_o book_n and_o promise_v his_o favour_n and_o acceptance_n of_o they_o upon_o that_o account_n say_v if_o thou_o shall_v hearken_v to_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n 15._o deut._n 30.9_o 10._o verse_n 15._o to_o keep_v his_o commandment_n and_o statute_n which_o be_v write_v in_o this_o book_n of_o the_o law_n i_o will_v rejoice_v over_o thou_o for_o good._n see_v i_o have_v set_v before_o thou_o this_o day_n life_n and_o good_a and_o death_n and_o evil_n and_o david_n speak_v thus_o unto_o king_n solomon_n 2.3_o 1_o king_n 2.3_o keep_v the_o charge_n of_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n to_o walk_v in_o his_o way_n to_o keep_v his_o statute_n and_o his_o commandment_n and_o his_o judgement_n and_o his_o testimony_n as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n that_o thou_o may_v prosper_v in_o all_o that_o thou_o do_v and_o whithersoever_o thou_o turn_v thyself_o if_o then_o the_o observation_n of_o what_o be_v write_v in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n be_v sufficient_a to_o procure_v life_n favour_n prosperity_n and_o acceptance_n with_o god_n sure_o this_o write_a law_n must_v be_v a_o perfect_a rule_n and_o must_v sufficient_o contain_v all_o that_o be_v needful_a to_o be_v believe_v or_o do_v unto_o those_o end_n hence_o be_v the_o king_n command_v to_o write_v he_o a_o copy_n of_o this_o law_n in_o a_o book_n that_o he_o may_v learn_v to_o fear_v the_o lord_n god_n 19_o deut._n 17.18_o 19_o and_o to_o keep_v all_o the_o word_n of_o this_o law_n and_o these_o statute_n to_o do_v they_o and_o to_o perform_v the_o word_n of_o the_o covenant_n which_o be_v write_v in_o this_o book_n 34.31_o 2_o chron._n 34.31_o be_v to_o keep_v god_n commandment_n his_o testimony_n and_o his_o statute_n with_o all_o the_o soul_n and_o with_o all_o the_o heart_n whereas_o have_v oral_a tradition_n be_v any_o part_n of_o their_o rule_n they_o must_v have_v be_v oblige_v equal_o to_o observe_v what_o be_v deliver_v by_o it_o and_o all_o god_n statute_n and_o commandment_n can_v not_o be_v write_v in_o this_o book_n as_o it_o be_v so_o express_o and_o frequent_o declare_v that_o they_o be_v our_o saviour_n in_o like_a manner_n bid_v they_o search_v the_o scripture_n 3.39_o joh._n 3.39_o because_o they_o think_v in_o they_o they_o have_v eternal_a life_n in_o which_o apprehension_n have_v they_o be_v deceive_v as_o they_o must_v have_v be_v provide_v that_o there_o be_v another_o law_n of_o oral_a tradition_n give_v to_o lead_v they_o unto_o life_n eternal_a our_o saviour_n doubtless_o will_v have_v inform_v they_o of_o this_o dangerous_a error_n which_o yet_o he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o do_v that_o when_o a_o lawyer_n put_v the_o question_n to_o he_o what_o shall_v i_o do_v that_o i_o may_v inherit_v eternal_a life_n 26._o luk._n 10.25_o 26._o he_o answer_n what_o be_v write_v in_o the_o law_n how_o read_v thou_o this_o do_v and_o thou_o shall_v live_v 16.29_o luk._n 16.29_o and_o send_v the_o jew_n to_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n that_o by_o hear_v they_o they_o may_v avoid_v the_o come_n to_o the_o place_n of_o torment_n but_o neither_o he_o nor_o his_o disciple_n do_v ever_o send_v they_o to_o tradition_n or_o speak_v one_o word_n in_o approbation_n of_o it_o which_o be_v sufficient_a evidence_n that_o they_o know_v nothing_o of_o this_o rule_n of_o mr._n m._n 2_o 2_o 6_o the_o tradition_n concern_v doctrine_n general_o believe_v and_o practice_n needful_a to_o be_v perform_v among_o they_o after_o the_o law_n be_v write_v by_o moses_n and_o after_o god_n have_v give_v they_o a_o charge_n upon_o the_o cease_n of_o the_o succession_n of_o his_o prophet_n to_o remember_v and_o stick_v close_o unto_o it_o i_o say_v the_o tradition_n which_o obtain_v in_o the_o jewish_a church_n as_o far_o as_o we_o have_v any_o certain_a intimation_n of_o they_o be_v such_o as_o tend_v to_o the_o evacuate_n of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n to_o the_o renounce_n of_o the_o true_a messiah_n and_o to_o the_o introduction_n of_o vain_a worship_n and_o superstitious_a observance_n whence_o it_o demonstrative_o appear_v that_o oral_a tradition_n be_v not_o then_o a_o certain_a rule_n nor_o can_v the_o jewish_a nation_n be_v oblige_v by_o divine_a precept_n to_o receive_v it_o as_o such_o to_o make_v this_o evident_a consider_v 1._o that_o our_o saviour_n often_o send_v the_o jew_n to_o scripture_n to_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n but_o never_o to_o tradition_n 2._o that_o he_o still_o represent_v the_o great_a asserter_n of_o tradition_n in_o the_o jewish_a nation_n 11._o matth._n 15.14.23.16_o 17_o 19_o mat._n 15.10_o 11._o to_o wit_n their_o elder_n scribe_n and_o pharisee_n as_o blind_a guide_n lead_v of_o the_o blind_a as_o fool_n and_o blind_a confute_v their_o tradition_n though_o general_o receive_v before_o all_o the_o people_n 15.13_o mark_v 7._o mat._n 12.7_o matth._n 15.13_o justify_v his_o disciple_n in_o the_o neglect_n and_o violation_n of_o they_o pronounce_v they_o plant_n which_o his_o father_n have_v not_o plant_v and_o therefore_o such_o as_o shall_v be_v root_v up_o 3_o he_o plain_o tell_v they_o that_o by_o these_o tradition_n they_o do_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d transgress_v make_v void_a 7.10_o mark._n 7.10_o and_o null_n the_o commandment_n of_o god._n he_o show_v this_o by_o plain_a instance_n in_o their_o evacuate_n the_o five_o commandment_n by_o their_o tradition_n in_o observe_v and_o enjoin_v such_o tradition_n touch_v the_o observation_n of_o the_o sabbatick_a rest_n 23._o matth._n 12.7_o matth._n 12.12_o luk._n 6.9_o mark_v 3.5_o luke_n 13.15_o matth._n 23.16_o 23._o as_o contradict_v that_o great_a law_n of_o god_n i_o will_v have_v mercy_n and_o not_o sacrifice_n and_o make_v it_o unlawful_a to_o do_v good_a and_o preserve_v life_n upon_o that_o day_n and_o which_o sufficient_o demonstrate_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o blindness_n of_o their_o mind_n and_o their_o hypocrisy_n and_o in_o absolve_v they_o from_o their_o oath_n out_o of_o a_o ignorance_n so_o gross_a as_o know_v not_o they_o be_v virtual_o make_v to_o god._n he_o also_o charge_v they_o that_o by_o thus_o teach_v for_o doctrine_n the_o commandment_n of_o man_n 15.9_o matth._n 15.9_o they_o render_v god_n worship_n vain_a 4thly_a it_o be_v extreme_o evident_a that_o by_o virtue_n of_o some_o of_o these_o tradition_n they_o reject_v the_o true_a messiah_n and_o stand_v oblige_v by_o they_o so_o to_o do_v for_o first_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o the_o jew_n have_v a_o tradition_n general_o receive_v among_o they_o that_o their_o messiah_n shall_v be_v a_o temporal_a prince_n that_o at_o his_o come_v he_o shall_v restore_v the_o kingdom_n to_o israel_n he_o shall_v subdue_v the_o nation_n under_o they_o and_o shall_v erect_v a_o temporal_a dominion_n in_o the_o jewish_a nation_n over_o all_o their_o enemy_n trypho_n the_o jew_n declare_v to_o justin_n m._n that_o 249._o dial._n p._n 249._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o scripture_n do_v compel_v we_o to_o expect_v a_o great_a and_o glorious_a messiah_n who_o shall_v receive_v as_o the_o son_n of_o man_n from_o the_o ancient_a of_o day_n a_o everlasting_a kingdom_n 78._o in_o celsum_n l._n 2._o p._n 78._o not_o such_o a_o mean_a despise_a one_o as_o be_v your_o jesus_n the_o jew_n say_v origen_n say_v that_o their_o prophet_n represent_v their_o messiah_n to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o great_a person_n and_o a_o potentate_n and_o lord_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n and_o of_o all_o the_o heathen_n and_o their_o army_n 31._o de_fw-fr bello_fw-la jud._n l._n 6._o c._n 31._o josephus_n confess_v there_o be_v a_o obscure_a oracle_n find_v in_o their_o s._n book_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o about_o that_o time_n one_o of_o judea_n shall_v govern_v the_o world._n suetonius_n and_o tacitus_n say_v 5._o in_o vespas_fw-la c_o 4._o hist_o l._n 5._o that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o whole_a east_n vetus_n &_o constans_fw-la opinio_fw-la ut_fw-la
〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d lay_v the_o first_o foundation_n of_o christianity_n and_o so_o they_o need_v miracle_n to_o prove_v what_o they_o pretend_v to_o receive_v from_o god_n but_o as_o for_o we_o now_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d we_o introduce_v nothing_o of_o ourselves_o but_o only_o speak_v those_o thing_n which_o we_o receive_v from_o they_o and_o we_o go_v not_o about_o to_o persuade_v man_n by_o our_o own_o reason_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o afford_v man_n assurance_n of_o the_o thing_n that_o we_o say_v from_o the_o miracle_n that_o be_v then_o do_v by_o those_o who_o do_v indite_v the_o scripture_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o for_o this_o cause_n miracle_n be_v not_o now_o do_v now_o this_o be_v the_o very_a answer_n of_o the_o protestant_n when_o by_o the_o romanist_n they_o be_v call_v upon_o to_o show_v their_o miracle_n and_o it_o strike_v confusion_n upon_o this_o pretence_n of_o that_o church_n accuse_v they_o of_o new_a doctrine_n if_o they_o have_v any_o which_o be_v now_o to_o be_v confirm_v by_o miracle_n 2_o the_o father_n add_v that_o miracle_n have_v thus_o cease_v the_o devil_n be_v to_o set_v up_o by_o they_o to_o draw_v man_n off_o from_o the_o true_a faith_n to_o infidelity_n or_o to_o corrupt_v that_o truth_n god_n have_v already_o establish_v by_o sufficient_a miracle_n 266._o hom._n in_o matth._n ad_fw-la huet_n p._n 265._o 266._o thus_o origen_n declare_v of_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n that_o he_o be_v to_o appear_v for_o the_o deception_n of_o those_o that_o shall_v perish_v with_o all_o power_n sign_n and_o lie_a wonder_n and_o all_o deceivableness_n of_o unrighteousness_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d imitate_v all_o the_o miracle_n do_v for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o truth_n the_o author_n of_o the_o imperfect_a commentary_n on_o st._n matthew_n say_v that_o at_o the_o begin_n of_o christianity_n true_a prophet_n be_v know_v from_o false_a by_o this_o that_o the_o sign_n do_v by_o the_o first_o be_v profitable_a those_o do_v by_o the_o other_o be_v unprofitable_a but_o see_v now_o the_o time_n will_v come_v ut_fw-la etiam_fw-la ex_fw-la parte_fw-la bona_fw-la faciendorum_fw-la signorum_fw-la diabolo_fw-it detur_fw-la potestas_fw-la 75._o hom._n 19_o p._n 75._o that_o the_o power_n of_o work_v good_a sign_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o the_o devil_n we_o must_v inquire_v whether_o the_o sign_n be_v necessary_a or_o unnecessary_a as_o to_o the_o time_n for_o if_o christ_n do_v his_o miracle_n propter_fw-la confirmationem_fw-la infidelium_fw-la for_o confirmation_n of_o unbeliever_n manifestum_fw-la est_fw-la quia_fw-la modo_fw-la cum_fw-la nullus_fw-la sit_fw-la infidelis_fw-la faciendorum_fw-la miraculorum_fw-la necessitas_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la it_o be_v manifest_a that_o now_o that_o there_o be_v no_o unbeliever_n among_o we_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o do_v miracle_n and_o again_o former_o say_v he_o christian_n do_v miracle_n full_a not_o of_o admiration_n only_o but_o advantage_n and_o by_o these_o true_a christian_n be_v know_v from_o false_a 173._o hom._n 49_o p._n 173._o nunc_fw-la autem_fw-la signorum_fw-la operatio_fw-la omnino_fw-la levata_fw-la est_fw-la magis_fw-la autem_fw-la &_o apud_fw-la eos_fw-la invenitur_fw-la qui_fw-la falsi_fw-la sunt_fw-la christiani_n fieri_fw-la ficta_fw-la but_o now_o the_o work_n of_o miracle_n be_v whole_o minish_v and_o the_o do_v of_o feign_a one_o be_v chief_o find_v among_o false_a christian_n as_o st._n peter_n in_o clement_n say_v antichristo_fw-la enim_fw-la plena_fw-la signorum_fw-la faciendorum_fw-la est_fw-la danda_fw-la potestas_fw-la for_o the_o full_a power_n of_o do_v miracle_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o antichrist_n and_o a_o three_o time_n upon_o those_o word_n false_a christ_n and_o prophet_n shall_v arise_v and_o work_v great_a sign_n he_o comment_n thus_o 178._o p._n 178._o they_o shall_v work_v not_o vain_a and_o unprofitable_a sign_n as_o the_o minister_n of_o satan_n be_v wont_a to_o do_v but_o great_a full_a and_o profitable_a sign_n quae_fw-la sancti_fw-la facere_fw-la solent_fw-la which_o the_o saint_n use_v to_o do_v for_o whilst_o say_v he_o there_o be_v a_o call_n man_n from_o infidelity_n to_o faith_n the_o servant_n of_o christ_n do_v miracle_n because_o these_o testimony_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o their_o divine_a vocation_n that_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o doctrine_n may_v be_v commend_v by_o miracle_n but_o this_o call_v cease_v the_o seduction_n call_v man_n back_o from_o faith_n to_o infidelity_n will_v begin_v and_o then_o say_v he_o tradenda_fw-la sunt_fw-la seductionis_fw-la adjutoria_fw-la diabolo_fw-it id_fw-la est_fw-la potestas_fw-la faciendorum_fw-la signorum_fw-la the_o instrument_n of_o seduction_n that_o be_v the_o power_n of_o work_a sign_n be_v to_o be_v give_v up_o to_o the_o devil_n that_o by_o sign_n and_o prodigy_n he_o may_v commend_v his_o lie_n for_o truth_n and_o therefore_o now_o we_o must_v not_o take_v notice_n of_o man_n miracle_n but_o their_o fruit_n a_o good_a conversation_n 77._o hom._n 19_o p._n 74_o 77._o and_o a_o true_a confession_n and_o inquire_v si_fw-la confessio_fw-la ejus_fw-la conveniat_fw-la cum_fw-la scripture_n if_o his_o confession_n agree_v with_o the_o scripture_n for_o if_o so_o he_o be_v a_o good_a christian_a otherwise_o he_o be_v a_o false_a one_o 16._o in_o deut._n q._n 12._o quaecunquetalia_fw-la fiunt_fw-la ideo_fw-la sunt_fw-la approbanda_fw-la quia_fw-la in_o catholica_fw-la fiunt_fw-la non_fw-la ideo_fw-la ipsa_fw-la manifestatur_fw-la catholica_fw-la quia_fw-la haec_fw-la in_o ea_fw-la fiunt_fw-la de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccl._n c._n 16._o and_o in_o like_a manner_n theodoret_n instruct_v we_o not_o to_o regard_v the_o miracle_n of_o man_n when_o they_o teach_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d thing_n contrary_a to_o godliness_n and_o st._n austin_n frequent_o appeal_v from_o they_o to_o the_o scripture_n for_o find_v out_o the_o true_a church_n say_v these_o wonder_n do_v not_o manifest_v the_o church_n be_v catholic_n wherein_n they_o be_v perform_v but_o the_o holy_a scripture_n let_v then_o the_o donatist_n show_v we_o their_o scripture_n for_o these_o be_v the_o strength_n and_o firmness_n of_o our_o cause_n 3_o they_o teach_v that_o therefore_o god_n have_v forewarn_v we_o not_o to_o regard_v and_o not_o to_o be_v deceive_v by_o they_o or_o to_o look_v upon_o they_o as_o sufficient_a to_o establish_v any_o new_a doctrine_n for_o say_v st._n austin_n if_o some_o miracle_n be_v wrought_v by_o heretic_n magis_fw-la cavere_fw-la debemus_fw-la we_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o more_o cautious_a because_o our_o lord_n christ_n have_v say_v that_o there_o shall_v come_v deceiver_n who_o shall_v work_v such_o miracle_n as_o to_o deceive_v if_o it_o be_v possible_a 16._o lib._n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccl._n c._n 16._o the_o very_a elect_n he_o add_v by_o way_n of_o vehement_a commendation_n this_o behold_v i_o have_v foretell_v you_o whence_o the_o apostle_n admonish_v we_o say_v now_o the_o spirit_n manifest_o teach_v that_o in_o the_o late_a time_n some_o shall_v depart_v from_o the_o faith_n give_v heed_n to_o seduce_a spirit_n &_o doctrinis_fw-la daemoniorum_fw-la and_o to_o doctrine_n of_o daemon_n the_o same_o st._n austin_n in_o his_o thirteen_o treatise_n upon_o the_o gospel_n of_o st._n john_n bring_v in_o the_o donatist_n object_v thus_o pontius_n wrought_v a_o miracle_n donatus_n pray_v and_o god_n answer_v he_o from_o heaven_n and_o his_o reply_n to_o it_o be_v this_o contra_fw-la istos_fw-la 122._o to._n 9_o p._n 122._o ut_fw-la sic_fw-la loquar_fw-la mirabilarios_fw-la cautum_fw-la i_o fecit_fw-la deus_fw-la meus_fw-la my_o god_n have_v caution_v i_o against_o those_o miracle-monger_n by_o say_v in_o the_o late_a time_n false_a prophet_n shall_v arise_v do_v sign_n and_o wonder_n behold_v i_o have_v foretell_v you_o therefore_o our_o bridegroom_n have_v warn_v we_o quia_fw-la &_o miraculis_fw-la decipi_fw-la non_fw-la debemus_fw-la that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v deceive_v by_o miracle_n and_o in_o his_o second_o book_n on_o the_o sermon_n of_o our_o lord_n upon_o the_o mount_n he_o say_v our_o lord_n have_v admonish_v we_o not_o to_o be_v deceive_v with_o such_o thing_n conceive_v the_o invisible_a wisdom_n to_o be_v there_o where_o we_o see_v a_o visible_a miracle_n say_v many_o shall_v say_v in_o that_o day_n lord_n have_v we_o not_o in_o thy_o name_n cast_v out_o devil_n and_o do_v many_o wondrous_a work_n let_v such_o a_o one_o read_v what_o the_o magician_n of_o egypt_n do_v against_o moses_n 1173._o to._n 4._o p._n 1172_o 1173._o or_o what_o our_o lord_n say_v of_o the_o false_a prophet_n if_o any_o one_o shall_v say_v unto_o you_o here_o be_v christ_n believe_v he_o not_o for_o many_o false_a christ_n and_o false_a prophet_n shall_v arise_v and_o do_v mighty_a sign_n and_o yet_o that_o miracle_n pretend_v to_o be_v do_v after_o these_o time_n be_v urge_v to_o countenance_n and_o have_v be_v use_v to_o introduce_v and_o promote_v romish_a doctrine_n and_o practice_n be_v
it_o seem_v general_o to_o have_v prevail_v in_o the_o four_o and_o five_o century_n yet_o do_v it_o plain_o seem_v to_o contradict_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o teach_v that_o when_o the_o day_n of_o her_o purification_n be_v accomplish_v vulvam_fw-la luk._n ij_o 22_o 23_o puram_fw-la aperiens_fw-la vulvam_fw-la according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n they_o bring_v he_o to_o jerusalem_n to_o present_v he_o to_o the_o lord_n as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n every_o male_n that_o open_v the_o womb_n shall_v be_v call_v holy_a to_o the_o lord_n 101._o l._n 4._o c._n 66._o in_o partu_fw-la svo_fw-la nupsit_fw-la ipsa_fw-la patefacti_fw-la corp_n lege_fw-la lib._n de_fw-fr carne_n christi_fw-la c._n 23._o vid._n etiam_fw-la c._n 4._o &_o 20._o hom._n 14._o in_o lucam_n tom._n 2._o f._n 101._o according_a to_o the_o import_n of_o which_o scripture_n irenaeus_n do_v express_o teach_v that_o our_o lord_n at_o his_o birth_n open_v the_o womb_n of_o the_o virgin._n tertullian_n add_v that_o she_o be_v a_o virgin_n as_o not_o have_v know_v man_n but_o be_v no_o virgin_n quantum_fw-la a_o partu_fw-la at_o her_o teem_a her_o womb_n be_v then_o open_v according_a to_o that_o say_n every_o male_n that_o open_v the_o womb_n etc._n etc._n origen_n that_o matris_fw-la domini_fw-la to_o tempore_fw-la vulva_fw-la reserata_fw-la est_fw-la quo_fw-la partus_fw-la editus_fw-la the_o womb_n of_o the_o mother_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v open_v when_o she_o bring_v forth_o her_o son._n clemens_n of_o alexandria_n evident_o show_v that_o this_o be_v in_o his_o time_n only_o the_o say_n of_o some_o man_n attend_v to_o the_o fable_n of_o the_o false_a gospel_n of_o st._n james_n that_o the_o midwife_n after_o her_o delivery_n find_v by_o inspection_n that_o she_o be_v a_o virgin_n and_o that_o other_o hold_v the_o contrary_a for_o say_v he_o it_o seem_v to_o many_o and_o yet_o seem_v that_o mary_n be_v by_o the_o birth_n of_o her_o son_n a_o woman_n proper_o deliver_v of_o a_o child_n though_o she_o be_v not_o 756._o strom._n l._n 7._o p._n 756._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o woman_n proper_o deliver_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o some_o say_v that_o be_v inspect_v by_o the_o midwife_n after_o the_o birth_n of_o her_o son_n she_o be_v find_v a_o virgin._n 1._o de_fw-fr incarn_n l._n 14_o cap._n 6._o 6._o 1._o he_o respect_v say_v petavius_n the_o old_a wife_n tale_n invent_v by_o some_o idle_a trifler_n which_o we_o find_v in_o suidas_n and_o in_o the_o protoevangelium_a s._n jacobi_n which_o i_o can_v wish_v he_o have_v no_o otherwise_o relate_v than_o by_o way_n of_o contempt_n and_o derision_n thus_o we_o learn_v upon_o what_o ground_n this_o be_v believe_v by_o he_o against_o the_o opinion_n of_o many_o other_o st._n basil_n ground_n this_o opinion_n upon_o another_o story_n of_o like_a nature_n 509._o de_fw-fr human_a christi_fw-la gener._n tom._n 1._o p._n 509._o the_o story_n of_o zacharias_n say_v he_o prove_v that_o the_o virgin_n mary_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o entire_a virgin_n for_o it_o be_v derive_v to_o we_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d from_o tradition_n that_o zacharias_n be_v slay_v between_o the_o porch_n and_o the_o altar_n for_o say_v credunt_fw-la qui_fw-la hujusmodi_fw-la traditioni_fw-la non_fw-la credunt_fw-la that_o mary_n be_v a_o virgin_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d after_o the_o birth_n of_o our_o lord_n origen_n deliver_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o the_o like_a word_n 23.35_o in_o matt._n hom._n 26._o f._n 49._o b._n in_o matth._n 23.35_o venit_fw-la ad_fw-la nos_fw-la traditio_fw-la quaedam_fw-la such_o a_o tradition_n have_v come_v down_o to_o we_o and_o theophylact_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d we_o have_v it_o from_o tradition_n and_o yet_o origen_n in_o the_o same_o place_n confess_v that_o this_o tradition_n be_v not_o believe_v by_o other_o locum_fw-la in_o locum_fw-la and_o jerom_n say_v that_o it_o come_v exit_fw-la apocryphorum_fw-la somniis_fw-la from_o apocryphal_a dream_n and_o add_v that_o quia_fw-la de_fw-la scripture_n non_fw-la habet_fw-la autoritatem_fw-la eadem_fw-la facilitate_v contemnitur_fw-la qua_fw-la probatur_fw-la because_o it_o have_v no_o authority_n from_o scripture_n it_o be_v as_o easy_o condemn_v as_o approve_v of_o and_o thus_o we_o see_v the_o rise_n of_o this_o tradition_n which_o afterward_o prevail_v over_o the_o christian_a world._n 3_o 3_o 5_o that_o our_o lord_n live_v above_o forty_o if_o not_o to_o fifty_o year_n 39_o sicut_fw-la evangelium_fw-la &_o omues_fw-la seniores_fw-la testantur_fw-la qui_fw-la in_o asia_n apud_fw-la joannem_fw-la discipulum_fw-la domini_fw-la convenerunt_fw-la id_fw-la ipsum_fw-la tradidisse_fw-la eye_n joannem_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 39_o be_v the_o express_a assertion_n of_o irenaeus_n and_o for_o this_o he_o produce_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o of_o all_o the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n who_o meet_v s._n john_n the_o belove_a disciple_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o asia_n and_o declare_v that_o he_o deliver_v to_o they_o the_o same_o thing_n yea_o say_v he_o some_o of_o they_o see_v not_o only_a john_n but_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o hear_v the_o same_o thing_n from_o they_o &_o testantur_fw-la de_fw-la hujusmodi_fw-la relatione_fw-la and_o testify_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o relation_n to_o say_v with_o fevardentius_n upon_o the_o place_n that_o he_o may_v have_v have_v this_o from_o papias_n be_v a_o very_a unlikely_a thing_n for_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o testimony_n of_o one_o man_n but_o of_o all_o the_o senior_n not_o of_o man_n who_o have_v never_o see_v the_o apostle_n as_o papias_n have_v not_o but_o of_o they_o who_o have_v he_o cite_v not_o papias_n as_o in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o millennium_n he_o do_v here_o therefore_o be_v a_o solemn_a declaration_n of_o a_o tradition_n receive_v from_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o attest_v by_o all_o the_o senior_n and_o yet_o so_o far_o from_o be_v in_o the_o gospel_n as_o be_v pretend_v that_o by_o the_o gospel_n it_o may_v be_v evident_o confute_v so_o far_o from_o be_v own_v as_o such_o in_o after_o age_n that_o upon_o a_o very_a slight_a ground_n even_o the_o say_n of_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n 188._o vid._n fevard_n in_o iren._n p._n 46._o &_o 188._o that_o christ_n be_v send_v to_o preach_v the_o acceptable_a year_n of_o the_o lord_n many_o of_o the_o father_n take_v up_o a_o contrary_a opinion_n that_o our_o lord_n suffer_v in_o the_o fifteen_o year_n of_o tiberius_n and_o preach_v one_o year_n only_o when_o jesus_n come_v to_o his_o baptism_n say_v clemens_n of_o alexandria_n 340._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d strom._n 1._o p._n 340._o he_o be_v about_o thirty_o year_n old_a and_o that_o he_o be_v to_o preach_v but_o one_o year_n be_v thus_o write_v he_o send_v i_o to_o preach_v the_o acceptable_a year_n of_o the_o lord_n this_o both_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o gospel_n according_a to_o the_o plain_a meaning_n of_o the_o word_n aver_v say_v some_o in_o origen_n 111._o hom._n 32._o in_o luk._n f._n 111._o that_o our_o lord_n preach_v the_o gospel_n but_o one_o year_n and_o that_o on_o this_o account_n it_o be_v say_v 8._o cap._n 8._o that_o he_o be_v send_v to_o preach_v the_o acceptable_a year_n of_o the_o lord_n 16._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d l_o 1._o c._n 1._o p._n 16._o tertullian_n in_o his_o book_n against_o the_o jew_n say_v that_o christ_n suffer_v annos_fw-la habens_fw-la quasi_fw-la triginta_fw-la be_v about_o thirty_o year_n old._n lactantius_n africanus_n and_o other_o cite_v by_o fevardentius_n say_v the_o same_o and_o yet_o this_o be_v no_o better_a than_o a_o opinion_n first_o invent_v by_o the_o gnostic_n as_o we_o learn_v from_o irenaeus_n and_o for_o which_o they_o produce_v the_o same_o text_n and_o it_o be_v as_o easy_o confute_v by_o the_o enumeration_n of_o the_o passover_v our_o saviour_n celebrate_v after_o his_o baptism_n and_o before_o his_o death_n now_o if_o a_o tradition_n can_v so_o general_o obtain_v in_o the_o five_o century_n which_o have_v its_o rise_n from_o fabulous_a legend_n and_o apocryphal_a dream_n against_o plain_a word_n of_o scripture_n and_o plain_a assertion_n of_o the_o father_n live_v in_o the_o former_a century_n as_o that_o of_o our_o lord_n come_v out_o of_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o virgin_n without_o open_v of_o it_o do_v why_o may_v not_o other_o tradition_n pretend_v by_o some_o late_a council_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v of_o like_a nature_n why_o may_v we_o not_o credit_v the_o council_n of_o frankford_n 30._o in_o lib._n carol._n p._n 3._o c._n 30._o declare_v that_o the_o second_o nicene_n council_n for_o their_o pretend_a tradition_n of_o image-worship_n have_v recourse_n ad_fw-la apocrypha_n quasdam_fw-la &_o risu_fw-la dignas_fw-la naenias_fw-la to_o apocryphal_a and_o ridiculous_a tale_n 155._o comment_fw-fr
the_o african_n pass_v a_o severe_a judgement_n on_o the_o assertor_n of_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n though_o they_o refuse_v not_o communion_n with_o they_o they_o 20._o 6._o that_o neither_o stephen_n be_v opinion_n nor_o saint_n cyprian_n be_v prevail_v but_o the_o church_n go_v a_o middle_a way_n betwixt_o both_o both_o 21._o inference_n 1._o hence_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o western_a church_n be_v no_o good_a judge_n of_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o east_n east_n 22._o 2._o that_o in_o matter_n of_o this_o obscurity_n the_o custom_n of_o each_o church_n be_v to_o be_v follow_v without_o breach_n of_o peace_n peace_n 23._o 3._o that_o in_o those_o age_n they_o know_v nothing_o of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n or_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o guide_n of_o controversy_n controversy_n 24._o 4._o that_o they_o belive_v what_o pass_v for_o apostolical_a tradition_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n may_v be_v no_o such_o thing_n thing_n 25._o and_o last_o that_o even_o in_o those_o early_a time_n tradition_n apostolical_a must_v false_o be_v pretend_v by_o great_a and_o many_o church_n church_n 26._o furthermore_o we_o distinguish_v betwixt_o tradition_n touch_v point_n pure_o doctrinal_a 6_o dist_n 6_o or_o divine_a revelation_n which_o concern_v matter_n of_o mere_a belief_n as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o millennium_n of_o the_o time_n of_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n of_o antichrist_n and_o what_o do_v hinder_v his_o appearance_n and_o the_o like_a and_o tradition_n touch_v point_n of_o practice_n such_o as_o be_v the_o observation_n of_o the_o lord_n day_n the_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n over_o presbyter_n the_o ordination_n of_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n by_o bishop_n etc._n etc._n touch_v the_o first_o kind_n we_o say_v that_o it_o be_v no_o sufficient_a evidence_n that_o they_o be_v doctrine_n receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n that_o they_o have_v be_v assert_v by_o after-age_n to_o be_v such_o it_o be_v evident_a both_o from_o church_n history_n and_o the_o confession_n both_o of_o protestant_n and_o papist_n that_o in_o these_o matter_n the_o father_n have_v be_v subject_a to_o mistake_n in_o doctrine_n not_o belong_v to_o the_o fundamental_o of_o the_o christian_a faith_n but_o touch_v matter_n of_o practice_n we_o say_v that_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o receive_v all_o such_o tradition_n as_o have_v that_o evidence_n that_o they_o be_v general_o practise_v from_o the_o first_o and_o pure_a age_n of_o the_o church_n which_o we_o be_v able_a to_o produce_v for_o observation_n of_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n the_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n over_o presbyter_n the_o ordination_n of_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n by_o bishop_n and_o the_o like_a to_o give_v some_o instance_n of_o the_o first_o kind_n first_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o millennium_n millennium_n 1_o or_o the_o reign_n of_o saint_n on_o earth_n a_o thousand_o year_n be_v now_o reject_v by_o all_o roman_a catholic_n and_o by_o the_o great_a part_n of_o protestant_n and_o yet_o it_o pass_v among_o the_o best_a of_o christian_n for_o two_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o year_n for_o a_o tradition_n apostolical_a and_o as_o such_o be_v deliver_v by_o many_o father_n of_o the_o second_o and_o three_o century_n who_o speak_v of_o it_o as_o the_o tradition_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o of_o all_o the_o ancient_n that_o live_v before_o they_o who_o tell_v we_o the_o very_a word_n in_o which_o it_o be_v deliver_v the_o scripture_n which_o be_v then_o so_o interpret_v and_o say_v that_o it_o be_v hold_v by_o all_o christian_n that_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d exact_o orthodox_n and_o 1._o this_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o father_n of_o the_o second_o and_o three_o century_n as_o a_o tradition_n receive_v from_o the_o mouth_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n 39_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d l._n 3._o c._n 39_o eusebius_n confess_v that_o papias_n declare_v it_o to_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o saviour_n hand_v down_o to_o he_o by_o unwritten_a tradition_n 39_o lib._n 5._o c._n 33._o euseb_n h._n eccl._n lib._n 3._o c._n 39_o now_o of_o this_o papias_n irenaeus_n say_v that_o he_o be_v a_o hearer_n of_o st._n john_n the_o author_n of_o the_o revelation_n he_o himself_o profess_v that_o he_o only_o follow_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o who_o teach_v the_o truth_n and_o who_o relate_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o command_v give_v by_o christ_n himself_o and_o come_v from_o the_o truth_n itself_o ibid._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ibid._n that_o he_o receive_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n from_o those_o who_o follow_v they_o or_o converse_v with_o they_o and_o only_o write_v the_o thing_n he_o have_v well_o learned_a and_o well_o remember_v eusebius_n moreover_o add_v that_o his_o relation_n touch_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o millennium_n prevail_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d with_o most_o of_o the_o clergy_n that_o live_v after_o he_o to_o entertain_v it_o 308._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d dial_n cum_fw-la tryph._n p._n 308._o justin_n martyr_n speak_v of_o the_o same_o doctrine_n premise_v that_o he_o choose_v not_o to_o follow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o man_n but_o of_o god_n and_o the_o doctrine_n deliver_v by_o he_o and_o then_o he_o add_v that_o there_o be_v a_o man_n among_o they_o name_v john_n one_o of_o christ_n twelve_o apostle_n who_o in_o his_o revelation_n have_v foretell_v that_o the_o faithful_a shall_v reign_v with_o christ_n a_o thousand_o year_n in_o jerusalem_n 33._o lib._n 5._o cap._n 33._o and_o that_o our_o lord_n christ_n say_v the_o same_o thing_n ibid._n presbyteri_fw-la meminerunt_fw-la qui_fw-la joannem_fw-la discipulum_fw-la domini_fw-la viderunt_fw-la audisse_fw-la se_fw-la ab_fw-la illo_fw-la quemadmodum_fw-la de_fw-la temporibus_fw-la illis_fw-la docebat_fw-la dominus_fw-la ibid._n irenaeus_n add_v that_o the_o senior_n who_o see_v st._n john_n the_o disciple_n of_o the_o lord_n remember_v how_o they_o have_v hear_v he_o say_v that_o he_o have_v hear_v our_o lord_n christ_n teach_v this_o doctrine_n and_o then_o he_o do_v repeat_v the_o very_a word_n in_o which_o christ_n teach_v thus_o and_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o have_v they_o also_o from_o papias_n the_o friend_n of_o polycarp_n ibid._n cap._n 36._o hanc_fw-la esse_fw-la ad_fw-la ordinationem_fw-la &_o dispositionem_fw-la eorum_fw-la qui_fw-la salvuntur_fw-la dicunt_fw-la presbyteri_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la discipuli_fw-la ibid._n add_v that_o this_o according_a to_o the_o senior_n the_o disciple_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o ordinance_n and_o the_o appointment_n concern_v those_o that_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o that_o our_o lord_n teach_v this_o when_o he_o promise_v to_o drink_v new_a wine_n with_o his_o disciple_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n 24._o hanc_fw-la &_o ezechiel_n novit_fw-la &_o apostolus_fw-la joannes_n vidit_fw-la &_o qui_fw-la apud_fw-la fidem_fw-la nostram_fw-la est_fw-la novae_fw-la prophetiae_fw-la sermo_fw-la testatur_fw-la adu._n martion_n l._n 3._o c._n 24._o and_o st._n paul_n when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o creature_n shall_v be_v free_v from_o the_o bondage_n of_o corruption_n into_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god._n as_o for_o the_o kingdom_n promise_v to_o we_o after_o the_o resurrection_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n ezechiel_n know_v it_o say_v tertullian_n the_o apostle_n john_n see_v it_o and_o the_o new_a word_n of_o prophecy_n which_o we_o believe_v give_v testimony_n of_o it_o and_o if_o gelasius_n cyzicenus_n may_v be_v credit_v this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n deliver_v by_o the_o nicene_n council_n in_o these_o word_n we_o expect_v new_a heaven_n and_o new_a earth_n 30._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n hist_o council_n nic._n l._n 2._o c._n 30._o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n at_o the_o appearance_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o our_o great_a god_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n and_o then_o as_o daniel_n say_v the_o saint_n of_o the_o most_o high_a shall_v receive_v a_o kingdom_n and_o the_o earth_n shall_v be_v pure_a and_o holy_a which_o david_n by_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n foresee_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ibid._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v i_o believe_v to_o see_v the_o goodness_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o land_n of_o the_o live_n and_o the_o son_n of_o david_n bless_a be_v the_o meek_a for_o they_o shall_v inherit_v the_o earth_n these_o thing_n we_o have_v establish_v from_o the_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n most_o diligent_o frame_v by_o the_o holy_a father_n 2._o they_o speak_v of_o this_o not_o as_o a_o probable_a opinion_n but_o as_o a_o thing_n which_o they_o be_v certain_o assure_v of_o we_o know_v say_v justin_n martyr_n 307._o dial._n cum_fw-la trypk_n p._n 307._o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o thousand_o year_n in_o jerusalem_n 34._o predicta_fw-la benedictio_fw-la sine_fw-la contradictione_n
ad_fw-la tempora_fw-la regni_fw-la pertinet_fw-la lib._n 5._o c._n 33._o manifestissime_fw-la cap._n 34._o the_o benediction_n do_v without_o contradiction_n belong_v to_o the_o time_n of_o the_o kingdom_n say_v irenaeus_n and_o again_o these_o promise_n do_v most_o manifest_o signify_v the_o banquet_n of_o the_o creature_n which_o god_n have_v promise_v to_o give_v they_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o just_a and_o a_o three_o time_n 35._o sine_fw-la controversia_fw-la dicta_fw-la sunt_fw-la c._n 35._o these_o and_o other_o thing_n be_v without_o controversy_n speak_v as_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o happen_v in_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o just_a 3._o they_o confident_o cite_v cite_v 2_o as_o plain_a assertor_n of_o this_o doctrine_n the_o prophet_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n 26._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d p._n 307._o lib._n 5._o c._n 34._o lib._n 7._o c._n 26._o and_o the_o say_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o his_o apostle_n in_o the_o new._n this_o thousand_o year_n say_v justin_n martyr_n the_o prophet_n esaias_n and_o ezekiel_n and_o other_o do_v confess_v esaias_n manifest_o declare_v say_v irenaeus_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v such_o joy_n in_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o just_a ezekiel_n say_v the_o same_o thing_n and_o so_o do_v daniel_n the_o testimony_n of_o the_o prophet_n touch_v this_o matter_n be_v so_o many_o say_v lactantius_n that_o it_o will_v be_v infinite_a to_o collect_v they_o 32._o propter_fw-la hoc_fw-la beatus_fw-la dicebat_fw-la mile_n l._n 5._o c._n 32._o that_o our_o lord_n refer_v to_o it_o when_o he_o promise_v that_o the_o meek_a shall_v inherit_v the_o earth_n be_v the_o assertion_n of_o irenaeus_n and_o the_o forementioned_a testimony_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n and_o also_o when_o he_o say_v thou_o shall_v be_v recompense_v at_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o just_a 33._o cap._n 33._o say_v the_o same_o irenaeus_n and_o when_o he_o promise_v to_o they_o who_o leave_v land_n house_n parent_n brethren_n and_o child_n for_o his_o sake_n that_o they_o shall_v have_v a_o hundred_o fold_v now_o in_o this_o life_n ibid._n lib._n 5._o c._n 33._o ibid._n so_o irenaeus_n and_o st._n cyprian_n when_o he_o say_v to_o his_o disciple_n i_o will_v not_o henceforth_o drink_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o vine_n till_o i_o drink_v it_o new_a with_o you_o in_o my_o father_n kingdom_n when_o to_o that_o question_n of_o st._n peter_n 19.28_o exit_fw-la occasione_n huius_fw-la sententiae_fw-la quidam_fw-la introducunt_fw-la mille_fw-la annos_fw-la post_fw-la resurrectionem_fw-la hierom_n in_o matth._n 19.28_o peter_n we_o have_v leave_v all_o and_o follow_v thou_o what_o shall_v we_o have_v he_o answer_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o new_a and_z second_o state_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o just_a when_o the_o son_n of_o man_n sit_v on_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o glory_n you_o also_o shall_v sit_v upon_o twelve_o throne_n judge_v the_o twelve_o tribe_n of_o israel_n and_o when_o have_v correct_v their_o mistake_n about_o this_o matter_n he_o add_v you_o be_v they_o who_o have_v continue_v with_o i_o in_o my_o temptation_n and_o i_o appoint_v to_o you_o a_o kingdom_n as_o my_o father_n have_v appoint_v to_o i_o that_o you_o may_v eat_v and_o drink_v at_o my_o table_n in_o my_o kingdom_n this_o say_v justin_n martyr_n 312._o pag._n 312._o be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o mystery_n of_o our_o regeneration_n they_o cite_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n that_o testimony_n of_o st._n paul_n 8.21_o rom._n 8.21_o say_v that_o the_o creature_n shall_v be_v deliver_v from_o the_o bondage_n of_o corruption_n into_o the_o glorious_a liberty_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o liberty_n be_v in_o the_o next_o verse_n style_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 34._o iren._n l._n 5.32_o 34._o the_o redemption_n of_o the_o body_n from_o that_o death_n to_o which_o it_o be_v subject_a through_o the_o disobedience_n of_o adam_n and_o with_o which_o will_v be_v also_o a_o redemption_n of_o the_o creature_n from_o that_o curse_n which_o the_o earth_n suffer_v for_o his_o sake_n 35._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d p._n 308._o pag._n 307._o lib._n 5._o c._n 35._o they_o cite_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n that_o passage_n of_o st._n peter_n who_o say_v one_o day_n be_v with_o the_o lord_n as_o a_o thousand_o year_n and_o a_o thousand_o year_n as_o one_o day_n and_o this_o we_o know_v say_v justin_n m._n that_o these_o word_n do_v relate_v to_o the_o millennium_n again_o when_o esaias_n say_v we_o look_v for_o new_a heaven_n and_o new_a earth_n hemean_n say_v justin_n m._n the_o promise_n of_o the_o millennium_n these_o thing_n say_v irenaeus_n be_v without_o controversy_n speak_v of_o the_o resurrection_n in_o quâ_fw-la regnabunt_fw-la justi_fw-la in_o terrà_fw-la in_o which_o the_o just_a shall_v reign_v on_o earth_n last_o as_o for_o the_o author_n of_o the_o revelation_n they_o all_o with_o one_o consent_n declare_v he_o speak_v express_o of_o it_o and_o indeed_o he_o seem_v to_o do_v it_o so_o express_o that_o when_o in_o the_o three_o century_n some_o christian_n begin_v to_o dislike_v this_o opinion_n they_o begin_v also_o to_o question_v the_o authority_n of_o this_o book_n which_o never_o be_v before_o doubt_v of_o by_o any_o christian_a four_o observe_v that_o these_o father_n do_v express_o teach_v teach_v 3_o that_o this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o millennium_n be_v deny_v chief_o by_o heretic_n and_o such_o as_o be_v deceive_v by_o they_o 31._o quoniam_fw-la transferuntur_fw-la quorundam_fw-la sententiae_fw-la ab_fw-la haereticis_fw-la sermonibus_fw-la lib._n 5._o c._n 32._o haeretici_fw-la enim_fw-la despicientes_fw-la psalmationem_fw-la dei_fw-la &_o non_fw-la suscipientes_fw-la salutem_fw-la carnis_fw-la suae_fw-la lib._n 5_o c._n 31._o thus_o irenaeus_n in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o discourse_n upon_o this_o subject_n say_v he_o find_v it_o necessary_a to_o speak_v of_o it_o because_o some_o man_n opinion_n be_v pervert_v by_o the_o speech_n of_o the_o heretic_n and_o they_o understand_v not_o the_o appointment_n of_o god_n and_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o just_a and_o of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o again_o he_o say_v that_o some_o of_o those_o who_o be_v think_v to_o have_v believe_v aright_o do_v go_v beyond_o the_o order_n of_o the_o promotion_n of_o the_o just_a and_o know_v not_o the_o method_n of_o their_o train_n up_o or_o be_v exercise_v to_o incorruption_n have_v in_o themselves_o heretical_a sense_n of_o this_o matter_n for_o the_o heretic_n despise_v the_o formation_n of_o god_n i._n e._n the_o body_n frame_v by_o he_o and_o not_o receive_v the_o salvation_n of_o their_o flesh_n or_o not_o believe_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v save_v say_v that_o as_o soon_o as_o they_o be_v dead_a they_o transcend_v the_o heaven_n and_o the_o maker_n of_o they_o and_o go_v to_o that_o mother_n or_o father_n which_o they_o have_v feign_v to_o themselves_o they_o therefore_o who_o reject_v as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v all_o resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n what_o wonder_n be_v it_o if_o they_o know_v not_o the_o order_n of_o the_o resurrection_n which_o order_n with_o the_o method_n by_o which_o we_o be_v exercise_v to_o incorruption_n and_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o god_n he_o afterward_o declare_v to_o be_v this_o 32._o cap._n 32._o that_o our_o first_o resurrection_n be_v principium_fw-la incorruptelae_fw-la per_fw-la quod_fw-la regnum_fw-la qui_fw-la digni_fw-la fuerint_fw-la assuescunt_fw-la capere_fw-la deum_fw-la the_o beginning_n of_o incorruption_n by_o live_v in_o which_o kingdom_n they_o who_o be_v worthy_a so_o to_o do_v by_o little_a and_o little_o do_v accustom_v themselves_o to_o enjoy_v god._n 35._o cap._n 35._o and_o that_o the_o just_a man_n thus_o raise_v verè_fw-la praemeditabitur_fw-la incorruptelam_fw-la &_o augebitur_fw-la &_o vigebit_fw-la in_o regni_fw-la temporibus_fw-la ut_fw-la fiat_fw-la capax_fw-la gloriae_fw-la patris_fw-la shall_v true_o exercise_v or_o fit_v himself_o for_o incorruptibility_n and_o increase_v and_o flourish_v in_o the_o time_n of_o that_o kingdom_n 36._o cap._n 36._o that_o he_o may_v be_v make_v capable_a of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n and_o a_o three_o time_n that_o man_n be_v renew_v &_o vigente_fw-la ad_fw-la incorruptelam_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la possit_fw-la jam_fw-la veterascere_fw-la and_o make_v such_o progress_n to_o incorruption_n that_o he_o can_v now_o wax_v old_a tunc_fw-la qui_fw-la digni_fw-la fuerint_fw-la coelorum_fw-la conversatione_fw-la illuc_fw-la transibunt_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la in_o coelos_n then_o they_o who_o be_v worthy_a shall_v ascend_v to_o heaven_n justin_n m._n be_v ask_v by_o trypho_n whether_o he_o believe_v that_o jerusalem_n shall_v be_v rebuilt_a 306._o pag._n 306._o and_o the_o christian_n shall_v be_v gather_v together_o there_o with_o christ_n and_o the_o patriarch_n and_o prophet_n answer_v thus_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o have_v before_o confess_v unto_o thou_o that_o i_o and_o many_o other_o be_v of_o this_o
depend_v upon_o this_o supposition_n that_o as_o to_o their_o soul_n they_o be_v at_o present_a una_fw-la cum_fw-la christo_fw-la regnantes_fw-la &_o aeterna_fw-la felicitate_a in_fw-la coelo_fw-la fruentes_fw-la now_o reign_v with_o christ_n and_o enjoy_v eternal_a felicity_n in_o heaven_n and_o so_o admit_v already_o to_o the_o beatific_a vision_n whereas_o both_o justin_n martyr_n and_o irenaeus_n assert_v this_o doctrine_n be_v proper_a to_o the_o formentioned_a heretic_n they_o be_v the_o man_n who_o say_v that_o when_o man_n die_v 307._o pag._n 307._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o 31._o iren._n l._n 5._o c._n 31._o simulatque_fw-la mortui_fw-la fuerint_fw-la dicunt_fw-la se_fw-la supergredi_fw-la coelos_fw-la &_o ire_n ad_fw-la eum_fw-la qui_fw-la ab_fw-la ipsis_fw-la affingitur_fw-la patrem_fw-la their_o soul_n go_v direct_o to_o heaven_n and_o pass_v above_o the_o material_a heaven_n to_o the_o father_n these_o father_n also_o add_v that_o man_n be_v first_o to_o reign_v with_o christ_n on_o earth_n 21._o tertullian_n origen_n ambrose_n clem._n romanus_n chrysoftom_n theodoret_n oecumenius_n theophylact_fw-mi st._n bernard_n stapleton_n defence_n eccl._n author_n lib._n 1._o c._n 2._o lactantius_n victorinus_n prudentius_n aretas_n euthymius_n fr._n pegna_fw-la direct_v inquis_fw-la part_n 2._o c._n 21._o and_o so_o to_o accustom_v and_o fit_v themselves_o to_o reign_v with_o he_o in_o heaven_n to_o receive_v first_o their_o body_n &_o sic_fw-la venire_fw-la in_o conspectum_fw-la dei_fw-la and_o so_o to_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o most_o of_o the_o ancient_n be_v confirm_v by_o their_o own_o writer_n how_o therefore_o can_v they_o have_v any_o receive_a tradition_n that_o the_o saint_n be_v to_o be_v invoke_v as_o reign_v now_o with_o christ_n and_o be_v admit_v into_o heaven_n and_o enjoy_v the_o vision_n of_o god_n moreover_o moreover_o 6_o it_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o four_o age_n next_o to_o the_o apostle_n or_o of_o the_o four_o first_o centure_n that_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n be_v near_o at_o hand_n and_o that_o the_o world_n shall_v only_o last_v till_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n 3._o lib._n 1._o vis_fw-la 3._o thus_o hermas_n to_o that_o question_n whether_o the_o consummation_n of_o all_o thing_n be_v at_o hand_n hand_n 8_o answer_n that_o the_o end_n shall_v be_v when_o the_o tower_n be_v build_v and_o perfect_v say_v &_o cito_fw-la consummabitur_fw-la and_o that_o this_o will_v quick_o be_v in_o proximo_fw-la est_fw-la adventus_n domini_fw-la the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n draw_v nigh_o say_v tertullian_n 30._o de_fw-fr spectac_n c._n 30._o upon_o which_o place_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr cerde_n note_n that_o all_o the_o father_n speak_v thus_o of_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n we_o pray_v say_v the_o same_o tertullian_n for_o the_o emperor_n 32._o vim_fw-la maximam_fw-la universo_fw-la orbi_fw-la imminentem_fw-la apol._n c._n 32._o and_o for_o the_o state_n i._n e._n continuance_n of_o the_o empire_n because_o we_o know_v the_o conflagration_n of_o the_o world_n which_o be_v now_o imminent_a and_o the_o close_a of_o it_o which_o threaten_v the_o worst_a of_o evil_n be_v retard_v by_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n and_o again_o we_o pray_v for_o the_o emperor_n 39_o cap._n 39_o pro_fw-la statu_fw-la saeculi_fw-la pro_fw-la rerum_fw-la queite_n pro_fw-la mora_fw-la finis_fw-la for_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o age_n for_o the_o quiet_a posture_n of_o affair_n and_o the_o delay_n of_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n which_o show_v they_o think_v it_o be_v then_o near_o and_o a_o three_o time_n 2._o ad_fw-la scap._n c._n 2._o we_o wish_v well_o to_o the_o roman_a empire_n for_o while_o the_o world_n continue_v it_o shall_v stand_v st._n cyprian_n tell_v pope_n cornelius_n that_o christi_fw-la cito_fw-la approquinquabit_fw-la adventus_fw-la 157._o ep._n 57_o ed._n ox._n ep._n 63._o p._n 157._o christ_n come_n will_v soon_o draw_v nigh_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o caecilius_n he_o declare_v that_o secundus_fw-la ejus_fw-la adventus_fw-la nobis_fw-la appropinquat_fw-la martyr_n quoniam_fw-la in_o sine_fw-la atque_fw-la consummatione_fw-la mundi_fw-la antichristi_fw-la tempus_fw-la infestum_fw-la appropinquare_fw-la nunc_fw-la coepit_fw-la praefat_fw-la de_fw-fr exhort_v martyr_n his_o second_o come_v to_o we_o be_v near_o and_o in_o his_o book_n of_o exhortation_n to_o martyrdom_n he_o give_v this_o account_n of_o his_o write_n viz._n that_o he_o do_v it_o because_o now_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n begin_v to_o approach_v and_o fortunatus_n have_v desire_v he_o to_o write_v something_o to_o strengthen_v the_o brethren_n it_o also_o be_v the_o general_a opinion_n of_o the_o church_n church_n 7_o that_o antichrist_n be_v to_o come_v at_o the_o close_a of_o the_o world_n and_o it_o be_v also_o general_o believe_v that_o antichrist_n be_v at_o hand_n tertullian_n declare_v ibid._n de_fw-fr fuga_fw-la in_o persecut_fw-la c._n 12._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d euseb_n hist_o eccl._n l._n 6._o c._n 7._o ep._n 59_o p._n 139._o ep._n 58._o p._n 120._o scire_fw-la debetis_fw-la &_o pro_fw-la certo_fw-la credere_fw-la &_o tenere_fw-la occasum_fw-la faeculi_fw-la atque_fw-la antichristi_fw-la tempus_fw-la appropinquasse_fw-la ibid._n antichristum_n jam_fw-la instare_fw-la that_o antichrist_n be_v even_o then_o ready_a to_o appear_v judas_n a_o christian_a writer_n that_o he_o be_v to_o come_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n severus_n st._n cyprian_n say_v that_o he_o be_v now_o appear_v that_o his_o advent_n be_v at_o hand_n that_o christian_n ought_v to_o know_v and_o certain_o believe_v and_o hold_v that_o the_o day_n of_o trouble_v mention_v matthew_n the_o 24_o begin_v to_o fall_v upon_o their_o head_n that_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n draw_v near_o it_o also_o be_v the_o general_a opinion_n of_o the_o father_n that_o our_o lord_n be_v bear_v in_o the_o year_n of_o the_o world_n 5500_o 5500_o 8_o and_o that_o the_o world_n shall_v end_v or_o be_v renew_v in_o the_o year_n 6000._o that_o our_o lord_n be_v bear_v in_o the_o year_n 5500_o or_o 5508_o or_o 5509_o as_o the_o greek_n common_o compute_v 525._o apud_fw-la phot._n cod._n 202._o p._n 525._o you_o may_v learn_v from_o hippolytus_n who_o as_o photius_n note_n place_v the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d five_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n because_o then_o the_o six_o thousand_o year_n from_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v expire_v the_o world_n will_v end_v the_o father_n who_o be_v of_o this_o opinion_n be_v very_o many_o and_o 28._o and_o petau._n in_o epiph._n haer._n 66._o n._n 50._o fevardentius_n in_o iren._n l._n 5._o c._n 28._o magni_fw-la nominis_fw-la of_o great_a repute_n say_v petavius_n and_o sixtus_n senensis_n l._n 5._o annot._fw-la 190._o and_o they_o pretend_v to_o derive_v this_o from_o plain_a text_n of_o scripture_n 50._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d pseudo_fw-la just_o q._n 71._o ambros_n in_o gal._n 4.4_o oecum_fw-la in_o 1_o joh._n 2.18_o hier._n in_o mich._n 4._o epiph._n haer._n 66._o 66._o 50._o such_o as_o when_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n be_v come_v in_o the_o last_o day_n he_o speak_v to_o we_o by_o his_o son_n on_o who_o the_o end_n of_o the_o age_n be_v come_v now_o be_v the_o last_o hour_n which_o say_v st._n jerom_n if_o you_o divide_v the_o whole_a six_o thousand_o year_n of_o the_o world_n duration_n into_o twelve_o part_n according_a to_o the_o twelve_o hour_n of_o the_o day_n must_v be_v the_o last_o five_o hundred_o year_n of_o they_o it_o also_o be_v a_o doctrine_n almost_o general_o receive_v among_o the_o most_o ancient_a father_n that_o the_o world_n shall_v end_v or_o be_v renew_v after_o 6000_o year_n 15._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d sect._n 15._o this_o barnabas_n express_o teach_v in_o his_o epistle_n say_v attend_v my_o child_n what_o he_o say_v that_o expression_n he_o finish_v in_o six_o day_n signify_v this_o that_o god_n will_v finish_v all_o thing_n in_o six_o thousand_o year_n for_o that_o a_o day_n with_o he_o be_v a_o thousand_o year_n he_o himself_o testify_v say_v a_o day_n shall_v be_v as_o a_o thousand_o year_n wherefore_o child_n in_o six_o day_n that_o be_v in_o six_o thousand_o year_n shall_v all_o thing_n be_v consummate_v in_o as_o many_o day_n as_o the_o world_n be_v make_v 28._o quotquot_fw-la enim_fw-la diebus_fw-la hic_fw-la factus_fw-la est_fw-la mundus_fw-la tot_fw-la &_o millenis_fw-la annis_fw-la consummatur_fw-la si_fw-la enim_fw-la dies_fw-la domini_fw-la quase_n mille_fw-la anni_fw-la etc._n etc._n lib._n 5._o c._n 28._o in_o so_o many_o thousand_o year_n it_o be_v consummate_v for_o if_o as_o the_o prophecy_n say_v the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v as_o a_o thousand_o year_n and_o in_o six_o day_n be_v all_o thing_n make_v which_o be_v make_v it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o consummation_n
of_o they_o will_v be_v the_o six_o thousand_o year_n so_o irenaeus_n his_o scholar_n hippolytus_n in_o the_o forecited_n passage_n say_v the_o same_o thing_n 25._o vide_fw-la sixt._n senen_fw-la bibl._n sanctae_fw-la l._n 5._o annot_v 190._o lib._n 7._o c._n 25._o eustathius_n in_o his_o hexaemeron_n and_o the_o author_n of_o the_o question_n and_o answer_n pass_v under_o the_o name_n of_o justin_n martyr_n lactantius_n hilary_n and_o jerom_n be_v all_o of_o the_o same_o mind_n and_o hence_o lactantius_n take_v the_o confidence_n to_o say_v in_o his_o time_n it_o can_v not_o be_v above_o two_o hundred_o year_n before_o the_o world_n will_v have_v a_o end_n st._n cyprian_n 168._o de_fw-fr exhort_v mart._n p._n 168._o that_o sex_n millia_fw-la annorum_fw-la jam_fw-la fere_n complentur_fw-la the_o six_o thousand_o year_n be_v almost_o complete_v and_o st._n jerom_n b._n ep._n ad_fw-la gerontium_fw-la de_fw-la monogamia_fw-la tom._n 1._o f._n 33._o b._n when_o he_o hear_v of_o the_o take_n of_o rome_n by_o alaricus_n the_o goth_n cry_v out_o qui_fw-la tenebat_fw-la de_fw-fr medio_fw-la fit_a &_o non_fw-la intelligimus_fw-la antichristum_n appropinquare_fw-la he_o who_o hinder_v be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o way_n and_o do_v we_o not_o consider_v that_o antichrist_n be_v at_o hand_n and_o this_o opinion_n 21.24_o disert_fw-la de_fw-fr mart_n fortitud_n fortitud_n 21.24_o as_o it_o be_v well_o note_v by_o the_o learned_a mr._n dodwell_n they_o collect_v from_o the_o prophetic_a writing_n and_o from_o the_o phrase_n of_o the_o last_o day_n so_o frequent_a in_o the_o scripture_n and_o from_o those_o expression_n which_o mention_v our_o lord_n come_v to_o destroy_v jerusalem_n as_o at_o hand_n and_o yet_o we_o have_v already_o live_v long_o enough_o to_o see_v the_o falseness_n of_o this_o doctrine_n and_o so_o to_o be_v convince_v that_o in_o these_o matter_n the_o church_n guide_n be_v not_o infallible_a interpreter_n of_o scripture_n nor_o authentic_a deriver_n of_o tradition_n down_o to_o future_a age_n and_o which_o be_v in_o this_o matter_n more_o observable_a 6._o 2_o thes_n ij_o 6._o the_o apostle_n plain_o have_v foretell_v they_o what_o it_o be_v that_o hinder_v this_o appearance_n of_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o they_o retain_v not_o what_o he_o tell_v they_o nor_o have_v the_o church_n of_o future_a age_n be_v able_a to_o inform_v we_o nor_o can_v our_o pretender_n to_o infallibility_n tell_v we_o with_o any_o certainty_n 6._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d v._o 6._o what_o be_v the_o hindrance_n which_o st._n paul_n there_o mean_v and_o his_o thessalonian_o then_o know_v for_o that_o they_o do_v know_v it_o we_o be_v sure_a because_o it_o be_v write_v but_o what_o it_o be_v none_o of_o they_o know_v because_o it_o be_v unwriten_v the_o church_n that_o infallible_a oracle_n and_o excellent_a keeper_n of_o tradition_n have_v lose_v this_o and_o many_o more_o tradition_n that_o be_v discourse_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o his_o apostle_n by_o word_n of_o mouth_n because_o they_o be_v not_o write_v and_o therefore_o bless_a be_v the_o goodness_n of_o that_o god_n who_o see_v what_o a_o unfaithful_a keeper_n of_o tradition_n the_o church_n be_v take_v order_n that_o what_o his_o wisdom_n see_v necessary_a for_o we_o to_o know_v and_o practice_v shall_v be_v write_v 2._o dist_n 7_o in_o matter_n of_o practice_n we_o distinguish_v betwixt_o such_o practice_n as_o have_v be_v general_o receive_v and_o own_a without_o contest_v from_o the_o first_o and_o pure_a age_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o lord_n day_n the_o ordination_n of_o presbyter_n by_o bishop_n and_o such_o as_o have_v be_v matter_n of_o long_o contest_v and_o in_o which_o the_o tradition_n plead_v by_o some_o have_v be_v as_o evident_o disow_v by_o other_o as_o good_a member_n of_o the_o church_n as_o they_o and_o that_o we_o have_v no_o sufficient_a reason_n to_o depend_v much_o on_o such_o pretence_n to_o tradition_n will_v appear_v from_o the_o dispute_n betwixt_o pope_n victor_n and_o the_o asiatic_a bishop_n about_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o easter_n festival_n of_o which_o let_v it_o be_v note_a first_a first_a 9_o that_o pope_n victor_n and_o the_o r._n church_n keep_v the_o easter_n festival_n on_o the_o lord_n day_n only_o whereas_o the_o asiatic_n and_o some_o few_o church_n with_o they_o do_v celebrate_v that_o festival_n on_o the_o fourteen_o day_n of_o march_n on_o whatsoever_o day_n of_o the_o week_n that_o happen_v whence_o sometime_o it_o fall_v out_o that_o some_o christian_n be_v feast_v and_o rejoice_v when_o other_o be_v observe_v their_o lent_n fast_o for_o this_o cause_n synod_n meet_v in_o divers_a place_n and_o particular_o a_o r._n synod_n which_o decree_v with_o victor_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o all_o with_o one_o consent_n shall_v keep_v the_o easter_n festival_n on_o the_o lord_n day_n and_o consonant_n to_o this_o be_v the_o practice_n and_o judgement_n of_o many_o other_o church_n for_o that_o this_o festival_n shall_v be_v by_o they_o observe_v on_o the_o same_o day_n be_v determine_v by_o st._n irenaeus_n who_o preside_v in_o france_n by_o theophilus_n bishop_n of_o caesarea_n by_o narcissus_n bishop_n of_o jerusal●m_n and_o the_o priest_n subject_a to_o they_o by_o the_o bishop_n of_o pontus_n in_o a_o synod_n where_o palma_n preside_v and_o by_o the_o church_n of_o the_o province_n of_o osdroena_fw-la and_o the_o same_o 23._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d hist_o eccl._n l._n 5._o c._n 23._o say_v eusebius_n be_v the_o eunanimous_a determination_n of_o most_o other_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o the_o christian_a world._n and_o though_o the_o asiatic_a church_n keep_v this_o feast_n upon_o the_o fourteen_o day_n of_o march_n yet_o be_v the_o contrary_a practice_n observe_v say_v the_o same_o eusebus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d through_o the_o whole_a world_n beside_o so_o that_o it_o be_v evident_a the_o much_o major_a part_n of_o the_o church_n concur_v in_o practice_n with_o the_o pope_n and_o judge_v it_o reasonable_a and_o expedient_a to_o observe_v this_o festival_n upon_o the_o lord_n day_n only_o and_o of_o this_o their_o determination_n they_o send_v letter_n to_o all_o the_o church_n round_o about_o and_o consequent_o to_o all_o the_o asiatic_a church_n second_o observe_v that_o according_a to_o eusebius_n eusebius_n 10_o they_o who_o keep_v this_o feast_n upon_o the_o lord_n day_n do_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d from_o a_o tradition_n apostolical_a 〈◊〉_d eccl._n hist_o l._n 5._o c._n 23._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ibid._n c._n 25._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d lib._n 5._o c._n 17._o p._n 258._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o bishop_n of_o palestine_n speak_v much_o of_o the_o tradition_n touch_v the_o paschal_n feast_n descend_v down_o unto_o they_o by_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n the_o constitution_n style_v apostolical_a command_n all_o christian_n to_o take_v especial_a care_n that_o they_o observe_v the_o paschal_n feast_v only_o on_o the_o lord_n day_n and_o forbid_v they_o to_o celebrate_v it_o any_o long_o with_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o five_o and_o sixty_o second_o of_o those_o canon_n which_o pass_v under_o the_o same_o stile_n forbid_v all_o bishop_n priest_n or_o deacon_n under_o the_o penalty_n of_o deposition_n to_o celebrate_v the_o paschal_n feast_n before_o the_o vernal_a equinox_n or_o to_o feast_n with_o the_o jew_n three_o observe_v that_o notwithstanding_o these_o assertion_n assertion_n 11_o the_o evidence_n that_o they_o who_o do_v observe_v this_o festival_n when_o the_o jew_n celebrate_v their_o paschal_n feast_n follow_v the_o practice_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n seem_v more_o strong_a and_o cogent_a for_o even_o eusebius_n confess_v that_o they_o who_o celebrate_v this_o festival_n with_o the_o jew_n ibid._n lib._n 5._o cap._n 24._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ibid._n tell_v the_o very_a name_n of_o the_o apostle_n from_o who_o they_o receive_v this_o tradition_n and_o of_o their_o successor_n who_o hand_v down_o this_o practice_n to_o they_o declare_v that_o it_o be_v thus_o celebrate_v before_o they_o by_o philip_n and_z john_n the_o apostle_n of_o our_o lord_n by_o polycarp_n bishop_n of_o smyrna_n thraseas_n bishop_n of_o eumenia_n by_o papirius_n melito_n and_o sagaris_n and_o by_o seven_o bishop_n predecessor_n to_o polycrates_n who_o all_o observe_v it_o as_o they_o do_v all_o these_o who_o in_o the_o first_o or_o second_o century_n do_v very_o laudable_o perform_v the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n and_o who_o have_v many_o of_o they_o extraordinary_a gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d keep_v the_o paschal_n feast_n say_v polycrates_n upon_o the_o fourteen_o day_n according_a to_o the_o gospel_n in_o nothing_o vary_v from_o what_o they_o have_v receive_v 193._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d
all_o thing_n which_o word_n do_v not_o establish_v but_o with_o the_o great_a evidence_n destroy_v this_o vain_a tradition_n and_o first_o that_o the_o word_n of_o malachy_n 6._o mal._n four_o 5_o 6._o behold_v i_o will_v send_v you_o elijah_n the_o prophet_n &c._n &c._n can_v be_v understand_v of_o our_o lord_n second_o come_v to_o pass_v judgement_n on_o the_o world_n will_v be_v exceed_o evident_a from_o these_o consideration_n 1._o that_o this_o forerunner_n be_v to_o come_v the_o lord_n there_o mention_v to_o follow_v before_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o jewish_a temple_n this_o be_v evident_a from_o these_o word_n behold_v i_o will_v send_v my_o messenger_n 2._o mal._n iij._n 1_o 2._o and_o he_o shall_v prepare_v my_o way_n before_o i_o and_o the_o lord_n who_o you_o seek_v shall_v sudden_o come_v to_o his_o temple_n for_o that_o the_o messenger_n in_o this_o three_o chapter_n be_v the_o same_o with_o elijah_n the_o prophet_n in_o the_o four_o chapter_n will_v be_v apparent_a 1._o from_o the_o office_n of_o this_o messenger_n which_o be_v to_o come_v before_o the_o face_n of_o the_o lord_n or_o to_o be_v his_o forerunner_n as_o the_o elijah_n mention_v chapter_n the_o ourth_fw-mi be_v to_o be_v and_z as_o john_n baptist_n be_v 2._o from_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o work_n he_o be_v to_o do_v 1._o mal._n iij._n 1._o this_o messenger_n be_v to_o prepare_v the_o way_n before_o he_o as_o the_o elijah_n promise_v also_o be_v to_o do_v by_o turn_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o father_n to_o the_o child_n and_o of_o the_o disobedient_a to_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o just_a and_o as_o the_o angel_n do_v inform_v we_o that_o the_o baptist_n shall_v do_v for_o say_v the_o angel_n he_o shall_v go_v before_o he_o in_o the_o spirit_n and_o power_n of_o elias_n to_o turn_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o father_n to_o the_o child_n and_o of_o the_o disobedient_a to_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o just_a to_o make_v ready_a a_o people_n prepare_v for_o the_o lord_n 3._o 17._o luk._n i._n 17._o from_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o day_n of_o his_o come_v mention_v chapter_n the_o three_o as_o a_o day_n so_o dreadful_a that_o few_o can_v abide_v it_o or_o stand_v when_o he_o appear_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o severity_n of_o the_o judgement_n which_o shall_v then_o befall_v they_o 2._o vers_fw-la 2._o and_o chapter_n the_o four_o as_o a_o day_n great_a and_o terrible_a since_o then_o the_o lord_n here_o mention_v be_v to_o come_v sudden_o see_v he_o be_v to_o come_v to_o hi●_n temple_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o day_n of_o his_o come_n be_v to_o be_v before_o the_o temple_n be_v destroy_v and_o therefore_o can_v not_o be_v the_o day_n of_o judgement_n 4._o this_o will_v be_v further_a evident_a from_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o person_n to_o who_o this_o messenger_n and_o this_o elijah_n be_v both_o send_v 1._o chap._n iij._n 1._o for_o the_o messenger_n be_v send_v to_o they_o who_o then_o seek_v for_o the_o lord_n and_o delight_v in_o the_o messenger_n of_o the_o covenant_n 4._o vers_fw-la 3._o vers_fw-la 4._o he_o be_v to_o be_v his_o messenger_n who_o be_v to_o purify_v the_o son_n of_o levi_n to_o make_v the_o offering_n of_o judah_n and_o jesusalem_n pleasant_a to_o the_o lord_n he_o therefore_o be_v a_o messenger_n peculiar_o send_v to_o they_o to_o reprove_v they_o for_o their_o sin_n and_o to_o declare_v unto_o they_o such_o thing_n as_o concern_v they_o and_o not_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v common_a to_o the_o whole_a world._n according_o elijah_n the_o prophet_n be_v send_v to_o they_o that_o fear_v his_o name_n 2._o chap._n four_o v._o 2._o to_o they_o who_o be_v oblige_v to_o remember_v the_o law_n of_o moses_n 4._o vers_fw-la 4._o which_o he_o command_v to_o he_o in_o horeb_n for_o all_o israel_n this_o day_n of_o terror_n therefore_o must_v be_v chief_o that_o which_o do_v concern_v that_o nation_n and_o last_o this_o elias_n be_v to_o come_v to_o call_v man_n to_o conversion_n and_o repentance_n for_o which_o be_v a_o fit_a season_n at_o our_o lord_n first_o come_n whereas_o at_o his_o second_o come_v there_o will_v be_v no_o time_n for_o repentance_n but_o for_o the_o destribution_n of_o reward_n and_o punishment_n he_o be_v to_o come_v to_o turn_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o father_n &c_n &c_n lest_o god_n shall_v smite_v the_o earth_n becherem_n i._n e._n the_o inhabitant_n of_o judah_n with_o destruction_n so_o that_o the_o ruin_n threaten_v here_o may_v be_v prevent_v by_o repentance_n and_o conversion_n whereas_o the_o general_a day_n of_o judgement_n can_v be_v thus_o prevent_v but_o will_v certain_o come_v in_o the_o appoint_a time_n the_o only_a objection_n that_o be_v considerable_a against_o this_o assertion_n object_n be_v that_o the_o day_n speak_v of_o chapter_n four_o vers_fw-la 5._o be_v represent_v as_o a_o dreadful_a day_n which_o seem_v proper_a to_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n whereas_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n first_o come_v be_v not_o so_o call_v but_o rather_o a_o acceptable_a day_n and_o a_o day_n of_o salvation_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v answ_n that_o the_o day_n of_o our_o lord_n first_o come_v consider_v as_o reach_v to_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v indeed_o a_o very_a dreadful_a and_o terrible_a day_n thus_o in_o the_o prophet_n joel_n we_o read_v of_o a_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n describe_v in_o the_o same_o expression_n 31._o joel_n ij_o 31._o the_o sun_n shall_v be_v turn_v into_o darkness_n and_o the_o moon_n into_o blood_n before_o the_o great_a and_o terrible_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n come_v and_o yet_o st._n peter_n speak_v of_o what_o be_v do_v after_o our_o lord_n ascension_n and_o cite_v these_o very_a word_n say_v 16._o act_n ij_o 16._o this_o be_v that_o which_o be_v speak_v by_o the_o prophet_n joel_n moreover_o our_o bless_a lord_n speak_v of_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o of_o the_o misery_n that_o shall_v befall_v that_o very_a generation_n say_v 21._o luk._n xxi_o 22._o mat._n xxiv_o 21._o these_o shall_v be_v the_o day_n of_o vengeance_n such_o day_n of_o tribulation_n as_o never_o be_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o never_o shall_v be_v afterward_o yea_o 2._o with_fw-mi dr._n pocock_n in_o mal._n 3._o v._n 2._o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o jew_n do_v in_o their_o talmud_n make_v mention_n of_o such_o great_a affliction_n which_o shall_v happen_v in_o the_o day_n of_o their_o messiah_n unto_o israel_n that_o happy_a shall_v he_o be_v who_o do_v not_o see_v they_o which_o notwithstanding_o this_o day_n may_v well_o be_v style_v a_o acceptable_a day_n a_o day_n of_o salvation_n to_o they_o who_o receive_v our_o jesus_n as_o their_o saviour_n believe_v in_o he_o and_o obey_v his_o say_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n malachy_n behold_v the_o day_n come_v which_o shall_v burn_v as_o a_o oven_n etc._n etc._n 2._o mal._n four_o 1_o 2._o but_o to_o you_o that_o fear_v my_o name_n shall_v the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n arise_v with_o heal_v in_o his_o wing_n whence_o after_o this_o most_o terrible_a description_n our_o lord_n speak_v thus_o to_o his_o disciple_n 28._o luk._n xxi_o 18_o 19_o vers_fw-la 28._o be_v not_o you_o terrify_v when_o these_o thing_n shall_v happen_v in_o patience_n possess_v your_o spirit_n for_o there_o shall_v not_o one_o hair_n of_o your_o head_n perish_v when_o these_o thing_n come_v to_o pass_v then_o look_v up_o and_o lift_v up_o your_o head_n for_o your_o redemption_n draw_v nigh_o second_o that_o the_o elias_n of_o who_o the_o prophet_n malachy_n speak_v speak_v 4_o be_v not_o the_o tisbite_n or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o there_o assert_v that_o he_o who_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o ahab_n be_v carry_v into_o heaven_n shall_v be_v in_o person_n send_v as_o the_o forerunner_n of_o our_o lord_n second_o advent_n will_v be_v evident_a from_o these_o consideration_n 1._o because_o elias_n the_o tisbite_n come_v not_o upon_o the_o errand_n mention_v there_o to_o prepare_v the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n or_o turn_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o disobedient_a to_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o just_a before_o the_o ruin_n of_o jurusalem_n and_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o temple_n as_o the_o elijah_n promise_v by_o the_o prophet_n be_v to_o do_v and_o do_v 2._o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o messenger_n describe_v by_o the_o prophet_n as_o the_o forerunner_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o of_o his_o day_n be_v john_n the_o baptist_n for_o so_o our_o saviour_n do_v express_o teach_v we_o say_v this_o john_n be_v he_o of_o who_o it_o be_v write_v 28._o matth._n xi_o 10._o luk._n seven_o 27_o 28._o behold_v i_o send_v my_o messeger_n before_o thy_o face_n to_o prepare_v thy_o way_n before_o thou_o there_o have_v not_o rise_v among_o man_n a_o great_a prophet_n
than_o this_o john._n since_o then_o it_o be_v already_o prove_v that_o elijah_n the_o prophet_n in_o malachy_n be_v the_o same_o person_n with_o the_o messenger_n here_o mention_v it_o follow_v that_o he_o can_v beno_fw-la other_o than_o the_o baptist_n 3._o our_o lord_n himself_o declare_v express_o that_o john_n the_o baptist_n be_v that_o elias_n who_o be_v for_o to_o come_v for_o when_o descend_v from_o the_o mount_n 9_o matth._n xvij_o 9_o he_o say_v to_o his_o disciple_n tell_v no_o man_n of_o the_o vision_n till_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a they_o think_v suitable_o to_o their_o tradition_n that_o this_o elias_n who_o appear_v in_o the_o mount_n be_v visible_o to_o appear_v among_o they_o to_o anoint_v the_o messiah_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o all_o the_o people_n and_o order_v all_o thing_n belong_v to_o his_o advent_n ask_v this_o question_n see_v according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scribe_n 10._o vers_fw-la 10._o elias_n must_v first_o come_v and_o do_v these_o thing_n why_o be_v it_o thou_o forbidde_v we_o to_o speak_v of_o his_o appearance_n to_o this_o enquiry_n our_o saviour_n answer_v that_o it_o be_v very_o true_a there_o be_v a_o promise_n of_o a_o elias_n to_o come_v and_o restore_v all_o thing_n 11._o vers_fw-la 11._o but_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o the_o elias_n promise_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d have_v come_v already_o and_o the_o scribe_n know_v he_o not_o but_o do_v unto_o he_o whatsoever_o they_o will_v 13._o vers_fw-la 12_o 13._o and_o then_o it_o follow_v that_o his_o disciple_n understand_v that_o he_o speak_v to_o they_o of_o john_n the_o baptist_n they_o therefore_o understand_v what_o the_o father_n do_v not_o and_o other_o will_v not_o learn_v from_o christ_n plain_a word_n that_o john_n the_o baptist_n be_v the_o elias_n promise_v as_o the_o forerunner_n of_o the_o great_a and_o terrible_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n whence_o it_o do_v plain_o follow_v that_o they_o who_o do_v not_o think_v john_n baptist_n and_o he_o only_o be_v the_o elias_n mention_v by_o the_o prophet_n must_v mistake_v for_o our_o lord_n plain_o say_v that_o that_o elias_n of_o who_o the_o scribe_n make_v mention_v as_o the_o forerunner_n of_o his_o advent_n be_v already_o come_v and_o give_v they_o no_o intimation_n that_o any_o other_o be_v to_o be_v expect_v after_o the_o come_n of_o this_o one_o there_o can_v be_v no_o pretence_n from_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o scribe_n or_o from_o the_o say_v of_o the_o prophet_n to_o expect_v any_o other_o moreover_o our_o lord_n as_o if_o he_o have_v foresee_v and_o have_v design_v to_o confute_v this_o jewish_a fable_n speak_v still_o more_o plain_o thus_o 14._o matth._n xi_o 14._o all_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o law_n prophesy_v until_o john_n and_o if_o you_o will_v receive_v i._n e._n attend_v to_o and_o believe_v it_o this_o be_v that_o elias_n which_o be_v for_o to_o come_v by_o which_o word_n he_o most_o plain_o teach_v that_o that_o elias_n of_o who_o the_o prophet_n speak_v as_o of_o one_o for_o to_o come_v locum_fw-la vid._n pocock_n in_o locum_fw-la be_v come_v already_o and_o make_v it_o manifest_a that_o all_o that_o be_v in_o malachy_n or_o any_o other_o prophet_n speak_v of_o elias_n 16._o luk._n i._n 16._o be_v make_v good_a in_o the_o baptist_n who_o come_v in_o the_o power_n and_o spirit_n of_o elias_n and_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o he_o alone_o as_o muchas_fw-es if_o he_o have_v in_o express_a word_n assert_v that_o he_o only_o be_v the_o elias_n that_o be_v to_o come_v and_o they_o be_v not_o by_o virtue_n of_o any_o prophecy_n to_o look_v for_o or_o expect_v another_o for_o thus_o our_o saviour_n speak_v the_o prophet_n malachy_n say_v 10._o matth._n xi_o 10._o behold_v i_o send_v my_o messenger_n before_o my_o face_n now_o i_o assure_v you_o the_o baptist_n be_v the_o very_a person_n of_o who_o this_o be_v write_v the_o same_o prophet_n say_v behold_v i_o will_v send_v you_o elias_n the_o prophet_n etc._n etc._n whence_o your_o scribe_n teach_v you_o to_o expect_v the_o personal_a appearance_n of_o elias_n the_o tisbite_n as_o the_o forerunner_n of_o your_o messiah_n but_o if_o you_o will_v receive_v the_o true_a interpretation_n of_o those_o word_n from_o i_o st._n 14._o verse_n 14._o john_n the_o baptist_n be_v that_o elias_n which_o according_a to_o that_o prophecy_n be_v to_o be_v his_o forerunner_n but_o against_o this_o plain_a assertion_n of_o our_o lord_n it_o be_v object_v object_n that_o in_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o seventy_o the_o word_n run_v thus_o behold_v i_o will_v send_v you_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d elias_n the_o tisbite_n which_o denote_v elias_n in_o person_n and_o can_v be_v apply_v to_o st._n john_n the_o baptist_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o this_o argument_n be_v of_o no_o force_n answ_n because_o it_o be_v found_v not_o on_o the_o original_a but_o only_o on_o a_o translation_n which_o be_v not_o authentic_a 2._o from_o this_o translation_n it_o may_v be_v probable_o collect_v that_o this_o imagination_n of_o the_o appearance_n of_o the_o tisbite_n obtain_v among_o the_o jew_n but_o hence_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v true_a any_o more_o than_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o millennium_n and_o of_o christ_n temporal_a kingdom_n must_v be_v true_a because_o they_o where_o receive_v by_o that_o nation_n as_o such_o 3._o 99_o pocock_n p._n 99_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n and_o figurative_a way_n of_o speak_v the_o baptist_n may_v as_o well_o be_v call_v elijah_n the_o tisbite_n as_o elijah_n the_o prophet_n that_o only_o show_v the_o country_n of_o that_o prophet_n as_o the_o other_o do_v his_o office_n so_o that_o if_o the_o baptist_n deserve_v to_o be_v call_v elijah_n the_o prophet_n because_o he_o come_v in_o the_o spirit_n and_o power_n of_o elijah_n he_o must_v deserve_v to_o be_v call_v elijah_n the_o tisbite_n on_o the_o same_o account_n see_v elijah_n the_o prophet_n be_v elijah_n the_o tisbite_n it_o further_o be_v object_v object_n 2_o that_o john_n express_o deny_v that_o he_o be_v elias_n for_o when_o the_o jew_n from_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n send_v to_o he_o say_v be_v thou_o elias_n he_o say_v 21._o john_n i._n 21._o i_o be_o not_o if_o this_o objection_n be_v of_o any_o force_n answ_n it_o will_v also_o prove_v that_o john_n the_o baptist_n be_v no_o prophet_n for_o to_o the_o follow_a enquiry_n be_v thou_o a_o prophet_n he_o still_o answer_v no_o whereas_o our_o saviour_n attest_v that_o he_o be_v a_o prophet_n yea_o and_o more_o than_o a_o prophet_n 9_o matth._n xi_o 9_o and_o all_o the_o people_n so_o account_v of_o he_o ibid._n dr._n pocock_n ibid._n his_o meaning_n therefore_o only_o be_v i_o be_o not_o that_o elias_n in_o person_n who_o you_o expect_v nor_o be_o i_o such_o a_o prophet_n as_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o messiah_n you_o expect_v to_o rise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o thus_o expositor_n tell_v we_o he_o choose_v to_o answer_v out_o of_o modesty_n that_o he_o may_v not_o commend_v or_o bear_v witness_n of_o himself_o think_v it_o more_o convenient_a that_o christ_n shall_v thus_o bear_v witness_n of_o he_o than_o that_o he_o shall_v ascribe_v so_o great_a a_o dignity_n to_o himself_o three_o object_n 3_o it_o be_v object_v that_o after_o st._n john_n be_v behead_v our_o saviour_n say_v elias_n true_o shall_v first_o come_v and_o restore_v all_o thing_n now_o how_o say_v they_o can_v this_o be_v speak_v as_o a_o thing_n future_a of_o john_n baptist_n then_o this_o therefore_o must_v be_v understand_v of_o some_o other_o elias_n to_o come_v hereafter_o this_o be_v the_o ground_n on_o which_o this_o doctrine_n be_v establish_v by_o justin_n m._n 268._o dial._n cum_fw-la tryph._n p._n 268._o that_o our_o lord_n teach_v it_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o elias_n shall_v come_v and_o in_o this_o he_o be_v follow_v by_o theodoret_n and_o many_o of_o the_o ancient_n after_o that_o our_o lord_n have_v utter_v these_o word_n answ_n not_o in_o the_o future_a 11._o matth._n xvij_o 11._o mark_v ix_o 11._o as_o the_o vulgar_a read_v they_o but_o in_o the_o present_a tense_n elias_n come_v or_o elias_n come_v first_o restore_v all_o thing_n he_o add_v immediate_o of_o the_o same_o elias_n 12._o matth._n xvij_o 12._o of_o who_o he_o have_v say_v he_o come_v or_o he_o shall_v come_v first_o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o be_v now_o come_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o he_o indeed_o be_v come_v and_o again_o if_o you_o will_v receive_v it_o this_o baptist_n be_v the_o elias_n 14._o matth_n xi_o 14._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d who_o be_v for_o to_o come_v and_o when_o he_o have_v say_v these_o word_n than_o his_o
disciple_n understand_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o john_n the_o baptist_n that_o he_o mean_v he_o and_o no_o other_o when_o he_o speak_v of_o a_o elias_n who_o be_v for_o to_o come_v so_o that_o the_o meaning_n of_o our_o lord_n word_n be_v plain_o this_o true_a it_o be_v as_o the_o scribe_n say_v elias_n be_v to_o come_v before_o the_o messiah_n and_o it_o be_v also_o true_a that_o john_n be_v that_o elias_n which_o be_v when_o malachy_n speak_v those_o word_n to_o come_v afterward_o but_o be_v not_o yet_o to_o come_v when_o our_o saviour_n speak_v of_o he_o but_o as_o he_o say_v express_o be_v already_o come_v though_o they_o who_o say_v elias_n must_v first_o come_v know_v he_o not_o when_o he_o be_v come_v and_o true_o have_v our_o lord_n speak_v of_o one_o elias_n viz._n john_n the_o baptist_n and_o the_o prophet_n malachy_n of_o another_o have_v christ_n speak_v of_o a_o elias_n to_o come_v at_o his_o first_o advent_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o scribe_n of_o one_o to_o come_v at_o his_o second_o advent_n he_o have_v not_o answer_v his_o disciple_n question_v but_o delude_v they_o and_o that_o the_o elias_n here_o speak_v of_o be_v to_o appear_v at_o our_o lord_n first_o come_n be_v apparent_a from_o the_o enquiry_n of_o the_o disciple_n why_o say_v the_o scribe_n elias_n must_v first_o come_v before_o the_o son_n of_o man_n for_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o scribe_n be_v that_o elias_n be_v to_o anoint_v the_o messiah_n and_o make_v he_o know_v unto_o the_o people_n and_o it_o be_v as_o evident_a from_o our_o lord_n answer_n elias_n come_v first_o i._n e._n before_o my_o resurrection_n of_o which_o i_o now_o speak_v from_o this_o place_n therefore_o it_o never_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o any_o other_o under_o that_o character_n be_v to_o appear_v before_o his_o second_o come_v it_o further_o be_v object_v object_n that_o the_o elias_n mention_v by_o malachy_n be_v to_o turn_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o father_n to_o the_o child_n and_o be_v according_a to_o our_o saviour_n acknowledgement_n to_o restore_v or_o set_v all_o thing_n in_o order_n which_o seem_v not_o to_o have_v be_v do_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o baptist_n who_o continue_v but_o a_o short_a time_n and_o do_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o these_o word_n seem_v to_o imply_v it_o remain_v therefore_o that_o these_o word_n shall_v be_v fulfil_v by_o a_o elias_n who_o shall_v be_v the_o forerunner_n of_o christ_n second_o advent_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v answ_n that_o all_o who_o will_v not_o give_v the_o lie_n unto_o the_o angel_n send_v to_o zachary_n must_v be_v oblige_v to_o confess_v the_o baptist_n do_v fulfil_v the_o prophecy_n of_o malachy_n for_o of_o the_o baptist_n he_o thus_o speak_v he_o shall_v be_v great_a before_o the_o lord_n 17._o luk._n i._n 15_o 16_o 17._o and_o many_o of_o the_o son_n of_o israel_n shall_v he_o turn_v unto_o the_o lord_n for_o he_o shall_v go_v before_o he_o in_o the_o spirit_n and_o power_n of_o elias_n to_o turn_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o father_n to_o the_o child_n and_o the_o disobedient_a to_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o just_a to_o make_v ready_a a_o people_n prepare_v for_o the_o lord_n if_o then_o john_n baptist_n do_v not_o fulfil_v the_o word_n speak_v by_o the_o angel_n we_o must_v confess_v the_o angel_n be_v deceive_v and_o zachary_n deserve_v not_o the_o punishment_n he_o suffer_v for_o disbelieve_v of_o his_o testimony_n but_o if_o he_o do_v fulfil_v these_o say_n of_o the_o angel_n he_o also_o must_v fulfil_v the_o word_n contain_v in_o the_o prophet_n malachy_n because_o the_o angel_n speak_v in_o the_o very_a word_n of_o malachy_n again_o our_o saviour_n acknowledge_v that_o a_o elias_n be_v to_o come_v before_o he_o and_o restore_v all_o thing_n add_v that_o he_o who_o be_v to_o come_v to_o restore_v all_o thing_n be_v already_o come_v and_o be_v the_o baptist_n he_o therefore_o must_v have_v restore_v all_o thing_n or_o it_o must_v be_v confess_v he_o do_v not_o execute_v his_o office_n or_o fulsil_n what_o be_v write_v of_o he_o moreover_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o zachary_n speak_v thus_o concern_v john_n 76._o luk._n i._n 76._o and_o thou_o child_n shall_v be_v call_v the_o prophet_n of_o the_o high_a for_o thou_o shall_v go_v before_o the_o lord_n to_o prepare_v his_o way_n which_o be_v the_o very_a thing_n the_o prophet_n malachy_n declare_v to_o be_v the_o office_n of_o his_o messenger_n and_o whosoever_o shall_v consider_v what_o in_o the_o gospel_n be_v say_v of_o john_n the_o baptist_n and_o shall_v compare_v those_o thing_n with_o what_o the_o prophet_n malachy_n and_o even_o the_o scribe_n aver_v that_o the_o elias_n promise_v shall_v do_v will_v easy_o perceive_v all_o that_o be_v say_v or_o prophesy_v concern_v elias_n be_v so_o punctual_o fulfil_v by_o the_o baptist_n as_o to_o cut_v off_o all_o further_a expectation_n of_o the_o completion_n of_o this_o prophecy_n by_o any_o personal_a appearance_n of_o elias_n before_o our_o saviour_n second_o advent_n for_o the_o prophet_n say_v behold_v i_o will_v send_v elias_n and_o the_o gospel_n say_v there_o be_v a_o man_n send_v from_o god_n who_o name_n be_v john_n and_o that_o this_o john_n be_v that_o elias_n which_o be_v for_o to_o come_v 105._o vid._n pocock_n p._n 105._o the_o prophet_n say_v of_o his_o elias_n that_o he_o be_v to_o come_v before_o the_o great_a and_o terrible_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o in_o the_o gospel_n john_n be_v say_v to_o come_v when_o the_o day_n of_o wrath_n be_v come_v when_o the_o axe_n be_v lay_v to_o the_o root_n of_o the_o tree_n 2._o matth._n xxiv_o 2._o and_o every_o tree_n that_o bring_v not_o forth_o good_a fruit_n be_v to_o be_v hew_v down_o and_o cast_v into_o the_o fire_n when_o he_o be_v now_o appear_v 38._o mat._n twenty-three_o 38._o who_o fan_n be_v in_o his_o hand_n to_o purge_v his_o flour_n and_o gather_v the_o wheat_n into_o his_o barn_n and_o to_o burn_v up_o the_o chaff_n with_o unquenchable_a fire_n he_o come_v at_o the_o time_n when_o say_v our_o saviour_n 43._o luk._n nineteeen_o 43._o their_o house_n be_v to_o be_v leave_v unto_o they_o desolate_a when_o the_o desolation_n of_o their_o city_n 44._o luk._n nineteeen_o 43_o 44._o nation_n and_o temple_n be_v irreversable_o at_o hand_n when_o the_o enemy_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v to_o cast_v a_o trench_n about_o she_o and_o lay_v she_o even_o with_o the_o ground_n and_o her_o child_n within_o she_o here_o it_o be_v say_v that_o this_o elijah_n shall_v turn_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o father_n to_o the_o child_n etc._n etc._n that_o he_o shall_v preach_v to_o young_a and_o old_a conversion_n and_o repentance_n and_o in_o the_o gospel_n it_o be_v say_v of_o john_n that_o he_o shall_v turn_v many_o of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n to_o the_o lord_n their_o god_n that_o he_o shall_v turn_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o father_n to_o their_o child_n and_o of_o the_o disobedient_a to_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o just_a 6._o luk._n iij._n 3._o matth._n iij._n 5_o 6._o that_o he_o preach_v to_o all_o the_o baptism_n of_o repentance_n and_o that_o with_o such_o success_n and_o good_a effect_n that_o jerusalem_n and_o all_o judea_n and_o all_o the_o region_n round_o about_o jordan_n go_v out_o to_o he_o and_o be_v baptise_a of_o he_o confess_v their_o sin_n that_o all_o the_o people_n 14._o luk._n seven_o 29._o matth._n iij._n 7._o luk._n iij._n 13_o 14._o and_o the_o publican_n justify_v god_n be_v baptise_a of_o john._n so_o effectual_a be_v his_o ministry_n that_o many_o of_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharise_n come_v to_o his_o baptism_n and_o even_o the_o soldier_n and_o the_o publican_n to_o be_v instruct_v by_o he_o 105._o vid._n dr._n pocock_n p._n 105._o he_o prevail_v general_o with_o the_o jew_n to_o unite_v in_o one_o common_a baptism_n that_o of_o repentance_n and_o whereas_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o scribe_n teach_v that_o elias_n be_v to_o anoint_v the_o messiah_n and_o make_v he_o know_v to_o the_o people_n john_n do_v baptise_v he_o and_o declare_v unto_o the_o people_n that_o he_o be_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n 16._o john_n i._n 29._o matth._n iij._n 16._o and_o at_o his_o baptism_n by_o st._n john_n he_o be_v anoint_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n what_o therefore_o better_a can_v agree_v than_o the_o prophecy_n in_o malachy_n and_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n in_o the_o gospel_n what_o can_v be_v further_a requisite_a to_o show_v that_o the_o person_n who_o be_v characterise_v thus_o by_o the_o prophet_n and_o who_o so_o punctual_o answer_v to_o that_o character_n in_o the_o gospel_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o person_n and_o that_o no_o other_o ought_v to_o be_v expect_v by_o virtue_n of_o this_o prophecy_n now_o hence_o it_o
follow_v 1._o 1._o 5_o that_o the_o renown_a scribe_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n be_v all_o mistake_v in_o their_o interpretation_n of_o this_o place_n of_o malachy_n that_o they_o and_o the_o whole_a jewish_a church_n have_v entertain_v a_o false_a tradition_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a consequence_n as_o the_o forerunner_n of_o their_o true_a messiah_n for_o they_o all_o have_v embrace_v it_o as_o a_o tradition_n that_o elias_n be_v to_o come_v in_o person_n before_o the_o first_o appearance_n of_o the_o true_a messiah_n 268._o trypho_n apud_fw-la justin_n m._n p._n 268._o they_o all_o interpret_v that_o place_n of_o malachy_n to_o that_o effect_n and_o thence_o conclude_v as_o they_o still_o obstinate_o do_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o because_o elias_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v in_o person_n their_o messiah_n be_v not_o come_v and_o yet_o this_o general_a tradition_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n give_v no_o assurance_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o assertion_n or_o if_o it_o do_v it_o must_v be_v then_o confess_v that_o their_o messiah_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v 2._o hence_o also_o we_o may_v learn_v how_o vain_o man_n pretend_v to_o absolute_a certainty_n on_o the_o account_n of_o oral_a tradition_n for_o that_o tradition_n be_v receive_v as_o much_o as_o high_o reverence_v and_o regard_v by_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n as_o by_o the_o romanist_n i_o hope_v will_v easy_o be_v grant_v when_o we_o consider_v how_o zealous_a they_o be_v for_o the_o custom_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o father_n how_o they_o advance_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o elder_n even_o to_o the_o dissolution_n and_o make_v void_a the_o law_n of_o god._n and_o how_o frequent_a be_v such_o maxim_n as_o these_o among_o they_o 15.2_o vid._n leight_n in_o matth._n 15.2_o the_o word_n of_o the_o scribe_n be_v more_o worthy_a than_o the_o word_n of_o the_o law_n and_o more_o weighty_a than_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o elder_n be_v more_o weighty_a than_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n that_o they_o come_v from_o the_o mouth_n of_o moses_n as_o well_o as_o the_o write_v law._n that_o the_o write_a law_n be_v narrow_a but_o the_o traditional_a be_v long_a than_o the_o earth_n and_o broad_a than_o the_o sea._n and_o yet_o these_o patron_n of_o tradition_n have_v not_o only_o general_o receive_v such_o tradition_n as_o make_v void_a the_o law_n of_o god_n but_o also_o such_o tradition_n touch_v their_o messiah_n his_o forerunner_n his_o temporal_a kingdom_n his_o glorious_a reign_n on_o earth_n etc._n etc._n as_o give_v occasion_n to_o their_o reject_v of_o he_o when_o he_o come_v if_o then_o the_o jewish_a church_n may_v pretend_v to_o oral_a tradition_n as_o much_o as_o that_o of_o rome_n and_o yet_o receive_v such_o falsehood_n as_o tradition_n which_o do_v evacuate_v the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o cause_v they_o to_o reject_v their_o saviour_n why_o may_v not_o they_o of_o rome_n receive_v such_o falsehood_n for_o tradition_n as_o do_v evacuate_v the_o law_n of_o christ_n if_o the_o people_n be_v deceive_v and_o abuse_v by_o follow_v their_o tradition_n why_o may_v not_o other_o be_v equal_o deceive_v in_o follow_v the_o suppose_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 3._o 3._o 6_o hence_o also_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n can_v be_v no_o certain_a evidence_n in_o matter_n of_o mere_a speculation_n or_o of_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n that_o what_o they_o thus_o deliver_v be_v the_o truth_n for_o they_o have_v general_o teach_v from_o the_o three_o century_n that_o enoch_n be_v to_o come_v in_o the_o last_o day_n to_o resist_v antichrist_n and_o be_v slay_v by_o he_o without_o the_o least_o appearance_n of_o any_o ground_n for_o this_o tradition_n and_o they_o have_v teach_v more_o general_o even_o from_o the_o second_o century_n that_o elias_n the_o tisbite_n be_v to_o come_v in_o person_n before_o our_o saviour_n second_o advent_n and_o ground_v this_o their_o doctrine_n upon_o the_o word_n of_o malachy_n and_o of_o st._n matthew_n against_o the_o plain_a assertion_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o the_o most_o clear_a convince_a evidence_n that_o john_n the_o baptist_n and_o he_o only_o be_v that_o elias_n which_o according_a to_o the_o prophecy_n of_o malachy_n be_v to_o come_v as_o the_o forerunner_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o a_o word_n the_o tradition_n of_o the_o millennium_n of_o the_o appearance_n of_o enoch_n and_o elias_n seem_v to_o have_v have_v their_o rise_n from_o the_o jewish_a convert_v zealous_a of_o the_o tradition_n of_o their_o father_n and_o from_o they_o not_o from_o the_o apostle_n to_o have_v gain_v reputation_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o the_o tradition_n of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a seem_v to_o have_v have_v the_o same_o original_a but_o now_o if_o a_o tradition_n have_v be_v very_o ancient_a ancient_a 7_o and_o can_v by_o reason_n be_v demonstrate_v to_o have_v derive_v from_o the_o apostle_n or_o to_o be_v worthy_a of_o acceptation_n upon_o rational_a ground_n than_o it_o be_v sit_v to_o be_v embrace_v as_o such_o for_o instance_n first_o we_o have_v it_o from_o tradition_n that_o present_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n all_o church_n be_v govern_v by_o bishop_n preside_v over_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n as_o their_o lawful_a governor_n whence_o we_o infer_v we_o have_v just_a reason_n to_o believe_v this_o form_n of_o government_n be_v apostolical_a since_o otherwise_o the_o government_n leave_v in_o all_o church_n by_o the_o apostle_n must_v in_o the_o immediate_a follow_a age_n have_v be_v not_o only_o change_v but_o corrupt_v every_o where_n but_o that_o in_o the_o frame_n and_o substance_n of_o the_o establish_a government_n of_o the_o church_n a_o thing_n always_o in_o use_n and_o practice_n there_o shall_v be_v so_o sudden_a a_o change_n so_o universal_a a_o corruption_n in_o so_o short_a a_o time_n and_o that_o all_o christian_n without_o the_o least_o opposition_n that_o we_o read_v of_o 28._o de_fw-fr prescript_n c._n 28._o shall_v conspire_v in_o this_o corruption_n be_v a_o thing_n moral_o impossible_a for_o as_o tertullian_n argue_v in_o like_a case_n variasse_n debuerat_fw-la error_n doctrinae_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la quod_fw-la autem_fw-la apud_fw-la omnes_fw-la unum_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la erratum_fw-la sed_fw-la traditum_fw-la what_o all_o christian_a church_n do_v so_o early_o agree_v in_o practise_v vniformly_n come_v not_o by_o error_n but_o tradition_n moreover_o it_o be_v clear_o prove_v by_o the_o most_o learned_a bishop_n of_o chester_n etc._n l._n 2._o c._n 13_o prima_fw-la assertio_fw-la p._n 157_o etc._n etc._n that_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o second_o century_n distinct_o mention_v the_o several_a order_n of_o bishop_n and_o their_o inferior_a presbyter_n in_o the_o same_o church_n and_o thereby_o give_v we_o reason_n to_o conclude_v that_o this_o disparity_n be_v general_o settle_v in_o that_o age._n now_o how_o improbable_a it_o be_v that_o either_o such_o a_o change_n as_o must_v be_v here_o suppose_v be_v this_o a_o innovation_n shall_v happen_v unadvised_o or_o through_o negligence_n or_o that_o the_o whole_a church_n shall_v have_v conspire_v so_o early_o to_o swerve_v from_o the_o establish_a order_n by_o place_v bishop_n above_o presbyter_n without_o complaint_n or_o the_o resistance_n of_o any_o single_a person_n that_o we_o hear_v of_o will_v appear_v if_o we_o consider_v 1._o the_o subject_n of_o this_o constitution_n viz._n the_o person_n appoint_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o govern_v and_o preside_v in_o every_o church_n they_o be_v constant_a object_n of_o every_o person_n common_a sense_n see_v in_o every_o assembly_n employ_v in_o every_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n public_a and_o private_a in_o which_o all_o christian_n sick_a or_o well_o live_v or_o die_v be_v concern_v we_o may_v reasonable_o conceive_v that_o which_o some_o of_o the_o apostle_n to_o gain_v upon_o the_o jew_n do_v observe_v the_o christian_a feast_n of_o easter_n on_o the_o fourteen_o day_n of_o the_o moon_n other_o may_v have_v mistake_v this_o compliance_n as_o if_o the_o apostle_n have_v judge_v that_o the_o fit_a time_n for_o christian_n of_o succeed_a age_n to_o observe_v it_o in_o or_o that_o when_o they_o hear_v of_o a_o elias_n to_o come_v before_o the_o terrible_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n or_o of_o the_o reign_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n a_o thousand_o year_n represent_v to_o st._n john_n in_o a_o vision_n they_o may_v mistake_v the_o genuine_a import_n of_o those_o scripture_n and_o of_o other_o of_o like_a nature_n but_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o this_o kind_n which_o be_v the_o daily_a object_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o all_o christian_n we_o can_v easy_o conceive_v how_o they_o can_v possible_o mistake_v and_o not_o perceive_v that_o such_o a_o change_n be_v make_v if_o real_o it_o
the_o greek_a and_o that_o their_o version_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n where_o they_o vary_v graecis_fw-la cedere_fw-la oportere_fw-la non_fw-la dubium_fw-la est_fw-la must_v yield_v to_o the_o greek_a copy_n be_v without_o doubt_n st._n jerom_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o lucinius_fw-la say_v b._n ep._n tom._n 1._o f._n 69._o b._n that_o he_o have_v translate_v most_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n and_o that_o he_o have_v translate_v the_o new_a according_a to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o greek_a ut_fw-la enim_fw-la veterum_fw-la librorum_fw-la fides_fw-la de_fw-la hebraeis_n voluminibus_fw-la examinanda_fw-la est_fw-la ita_fw-la novorum_fw-la graeci_fw-la sermonis_fw-la normam_fw-la desiderat_fw-la for_o as_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v to_o be_v examine_v by_o the_o hebrew_n so_o be_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n to_o be_v examine_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o greek_a in_o his_o epistle_n to_o sunia_n and_o fretela_n he_o tell_v they_o a._n tom._n 3._o f._n 28._o a._n that_o as_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n if_o at_o any_o time_n a_o question_n arise_v among_o the_o latin_n and_o there_o be_v a_o diversity_n among_o the_o copy_n recurrimus_fw-la ad_fw-la fontem_fw-la graeci_fw-la sermonis_fw-la we_o recur_n to_o the_o greek_a the_o original_a language_n in_o which_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v write_v so_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n if_o there_o be_v a_o diversity_n between_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a copy_n ad_fw-la hebraicam_fw-la recurrimus_fw-la veritatem_fw-la b._n ep._n tom._n 3._o f._n 10._o b._n we_o recur_n to_o the_o hebrew_n verity_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o damasus_n he_o say_v that_o he_o have_v at_o his_o command_n translate_v the_o four_o evangelist_n codicum_fw-la graecorum_n emendatâ_fw-la collatione_fw-la mend_v the_o former_a version_n by_o the_o collation_n of_o the_o greek_a copy_n it_o be_v the_o desire_n of_o damasus_n that_o because_o the_o latin_a copy_n differ_v he_o will_v show_v quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la illa_fw-la quae_fw-la cum_fw-la graeca_n consentiunt_fw-la veritate_fw-la which_o best_o agree_v with_o the_o true_a copy_n of_o the_o greek_a and_o indeed_o say_v he_o if_o we_o must_v trust_v to_o the_o latin_a copy_n let_v they_o who_o think_v so_o say_v to_o which_o for_o they_o be_v almost_o all_o different_a one_o from_o the_o other_o sure_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v write_v in_o greek_a when_o that_o differ_v in_o the_o latin_a tongue_n uno_fw-la de_fw-la fonte_fw-la quaerendum_fw-la we_o must_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o fountain_n now_o by_o the_o way_n they_o who_o speak_v so_o express_o of_o the_o hebrew_n and_o the_o greek_a verity_n by_o which_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o latin_a copy_n be_v to_o be_v examine_v show_v that_o the_o decree_n of_o trent_n that_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a 4._o sess_n 4._o pro_fw-la authentica_fw-la haberetur_fw-la shall_v in_o all_o readins_n disputation_n preach_n and_o exposition_n be_v receive_v as_o authentic_a and_o that_o no_o man_n shall_v dare_v under_o any_o pretence_n to_o reject_v it_o agree_v with_o antiquity_n after_o their_o usual_a manner_n by_o way_n of_o opposition_n and_o flat_a contradiction_n to_o it_o though_o in_o this_o matter_n i_o confess_v they_o be_v the_o more_o excusable_a see_v as_o espenceus_n say_v 3._o in_o 1_o tim._n c._n 3._o it_o render_v any_o of_o the_o latin_n suspicious_a to_o know_v greek_a and_o it_o be_v almost_o heretical_a to_o know_v the_o hebrew_n tongue_n and_o as_o melchior_n chanus_n do_v inform_v we_o the_o schoolman_n for_o four_o hundred_o year_n 108._o loc._n com._n l._n 2._o c._n 12._o p._n 108._o retain_v only_o the_o latin_a edition_n quip_n linguae_fw-la graecae_fw-la &_o hebraicae_fw-la non_fw-la habuerunt_fw-la peritiam_fw-la because_o they_o have_v no_o skill_n in_o greek_a or_o hebrew_n three_o three_o 10_o that_o the_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n have_v be_v hand_v down_o unto_o we_o uncorrupted_a in_o the_o necessary_n and_o substantial_o of_o christian_a faith_n and_o manner_n we_o conclude_v from_o reason_n ground_v upon_o matter_n of_o fact_n deliver_v and_o testify_v by_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o we_o receive_v they_o as_o such_o from_o the_o rational_a evidence_n which_o tradition_n afford_v in_o this_o case_n whence_o we_o collect_v 1._o that_o the_o apostle_n and_o holy_a spirit_n which_o do_v assist_v they_o in_o indite_v of_o this_o canon_n for_o the_o church_n use_n can_v not_o be_v want_v in_o cause_v they_o to_o be_v transmit_v to_o those_o christian_n for_o who_o use_n they_o be_v indict_v because_o they_o can_v not_o be_v want_v to_o pursue_v the_o end_n for_o which_o they_o be_v indict_v beside_o that_o they_o be_v actual_o thus_o commit_v to_o they_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n which_o own_v and_o cite_v read_v and_o receive_v they_o for_o such_o from_o the_o apostle_n day_n as_o be_v apparent_a from_o the_o epistle_n of_o clement_n polycarp_n ignatius_n and_o other_o who_o be_v contemporary_a with_o the_o apostle_n and_o from_o the_o work_n of_o justin_n m._n irenaeus_n and_o many_o other_o of_o the_o second_o century_n they_o be_v read_v also_o by_o the_o jew_n as_o trypho_n do_v confess_v and_o by_o the_o very_a heathen_n at_o the_o invitation_n of_o the_o christian_n for_o our_o doctrine_n and_o write_n say_v justin_n m._n 7._o apol._n 1._o p._n 52._o apol._n 2._o p._n 7._o be_v such_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o all_o man_n be_v permit_v to_o read_v and_o if_o you_o will_v vouchsafe_v to_o look_v into_o they_o you_o may_v learn_v these_o thing_n for_o we_o do_v not_o only_o read_v they_o ourselves_o 82._o ibid._n p._n 82._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o we_o bring_v they_o to_o you_o to_o peruse_v know_v that_o they_o will_v be_v acceptable_a to_o all_o that_o read_v they_o 31._o apol._n c._n 31._o we_o ourselves_o do_v not_o suppress_v they_o say_v tertullian_n and_o many_o accident_n do_v put_v they_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o stranger_n they_o be_v attest_v to_o by_o the_o suffering_n of_o the_o primitive_a christian_n who_o rather_o choose_v to_o suffer_v death_n than_o to_o deliver_v up_o these_o book_n which_o suffering_n they_o can_v have_v no_o temptation_n to_o endure_v beside_o their_o full_a conviction_n that_o they_o be_v as_o they_o always_o style_v they_o saepius_fw-la passio_fw-la s._n felicis_fw-la saepius_fw-la deifici_fw-la libri_fw-la scripturae_fw-la deificae_fw-la book_n which_o instruct_v they_o to_o lead_v a_o divine_a life_n and_o which_o their_o persecutor_n can_v have_v have_v no_o temptation_n to_o suppress_v and_o burn_v have_v they_o not_o know_v they_o to_o have_v be_v the_o record_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n with_o which_o their_o faith_n must_v live_v or_o perish_v moreover_o they_o contain_v thing_n of_o the_o high_a moment_n and_o which_o it_o be_v their_o chief_a interest_n to_o be_v well_o assure_v of_o they_o be_v the_o sole_a ground_n and_o matter_n of_o their_o support_n under_o their_o sharp_a trial_n and_o of_o their_o future_a hope_n and_o therefore_o write_n they_o be_v concern_v to_o get_v and_o hear_v and_o read_v and_o keep_v add_v to_o this_o that_o they_o very_o early_o be_v translate_v into_o other_o language_n into_o the_o syriack_n by_o apostolical_a man_n say_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n by_o man_n of_o great_a antiquity_n who_o live_v before_o the_o canon_n be_v establish_v as_o be_v apparent_a from_o their_o neglect_v to_o translate_v the_o controvert_v book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n into_o the_o latin_a and_o other_o language_n 91._o praeleg_n in_o bibl._n polyglot_n 13._o p._n 91._o say_v bishop_n walton_n from_o the_o beginning_n as_o we_o may_v rational_o conjecture_v see_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o other_o church_n which_o understand_v not_o greek_a be_v found_v in_o the_o apostle_n day_n or_o quick_o after_o nor_o can_v it_o rational_o be_v suppose_v that_o they_o be_v without_o the_o scripture_n long_o especial_o if_o we_o consider_v that_o it_o be_v part_n of_o their_o lord_n day_n exercise_n say_v justin_n martyr_n 98._o apol._n 2._o p._n 98._o to_o read_v the_o write_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o for_o the_o book_n themselves_o we_o find_v they_o most_o write_v to_o whole_a church_n nation_n 1._o 1_o cor._n i_o 1._o 2_o pet._n i._n 1._o or_o the_o whole_a world_n of_o christian_n to_o all_o that_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n in_o every_o place_n who_o can_v not_o easy_o have_v receive_v they_o have_v the_o apostle_n by_o who_o they_o be_v at_o first_o convert_v give_v no_o sufficient_a indication_n of_o they_o they_o be_v book_n which_o can_v not_o have_v be_v spread_v abroad_o as_o they_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n name_n whilst_o they_o be_v live_v unless_o the_o apostle_n have_v indict_v they_o
of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o believe_v they_o as_o true_a and_o uncorrupt_a as_o be_v the_o copy_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o say_v mr._n m._n m._n 16_o 399._o pag._n 399._o when_o we_o believe_v that_o the_o copy_n which_o we_o have_v now_o of_o these_o book_n be_v not_o forge_v nor_o corrupt_a copy_n but_o true_o agree_v with_o the_o original_n give_v out_o by_o the_o apostle_n we_o trust_v to_o the_o tradition_n of_o all_o the_o after_o church_n that_o have_v be_v in_o every_o age_n from_o the_o apostle_n to_o this_o very_a present_a church_n for_o it_o be_v as_o much_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n in_o any_o one_o of_o these_o age_n to_o have_v thrust_v a_o false_a copy_n into_o their_o hand_n instead_o of_o a_o true_a one_o as_o to_o thrust_v a_o false_a tradition_n into_o the_o mouth_n of_o every_o catholic_n every_o where_n in_o place_n of_o a_o true_a one_o this_o argument_n in_o the_o mouth_n of_o a_o jew_n reply_n first_o first_o plead_v for_o those_o tradition_n which_o be_v reject_v by_o our_o lord_n and_o his_o apostle_n run_v to_o this_o effect_n it_o be_v as_o much_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n to_o have_v thrust_v a_o false_a copy_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o jew_n instead_o of_o a_o true_a one_o as_o to_o thrust_v a_o false_a tradition_n into_o the_o mouth_n of_o every_o jew_n every_o where_o instead_o of_o a_o true_a one_o if_o therefore_o their_o receive_a tradition_n actual_o be_v false_a as_o your_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n teach_v you_o can_v have_v no_o assurance_n of_o the_o copy_n on_o which_o you_o depend_v for_o prove_v your_o jesus_n to_o be_v the_o true_a messiah_n be_v not_o false_a we_o say_v it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o power_n of_o any_o of_o the_o latter_a age_n second_o second_o to_o corrupt_v the_o original_n without_o corrupt_a not_o only_o all_o the_o write_v manuscript_n but_o also_o all_o the_o write_n of_o that_o christian_a church_n in_o which_o those_o scripture_n have_v be_v cite_v and_o all_o the_o commentary_n on_o they_o and_o all_o the_o translation_n of_o they_o into_o all_o language_n it_o be_v therefore_o evident_o false_a that_o it_o be_v as_o much_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n in_o any_o one_o age_n to_o have_v thrust_v a_o false_a copy_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o all_o christian_n instead_o of_o a_o true_a one_o as_o to_o deceive_v they_o with_o a_o false_a tradition_n instead_o of_o a_o true_a one_o no_o protestant_a ever_o assert_v or_o imagine_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v either_o willing_a or_o able_a three_o three_o in_o any_o point_n of_o doctrine_n to_o change_v at_o once_o and_o in_o one_o age_n the_o true_a tradition_n for_o a_o false_a no_o they_o unanimous_o say_v these_o tare_n be_v sow_o by_o the_o enemy_n whilst_o man_n sleep_v that_o they_o come_v in_o by_o degree_n and_o insensible_o get_v ground_n by_o little_a and_o little_a in_o one_o age_n the_o dispute_n be_v raise_v the_o opinion_n broach_v by_o some_o man_n of_o vogue_n and_o credit_n in_o the_o next_o it_o pass_v for_o probable_a in_o the_o follow_a age_n for_o a_o ecclesiastical_a doctrine_n and_o in_o the_o next_o advance_v into_o a_o article_n of_o faith._n thus_o for_o example_n image_n for_o the_o first_o three_o century_n be_v disregard_v by_o all_o christian_n the_o first_o thing_n they_o teach_v their_o proselyte_n be_v to_o contemn_v they_o in_o the_o four_o and_o five_o century_n they_o creep_v into_o some_o few_o church_n by_o way_n of_o ornament_n and_o symbolical_a representation_n in_o the_o six_o and_o seven_o century_n they_o begin_v to_o be_v receive_v for_o instruction_n and_o historical_a commemoration_n in_o the_o eight_o century_n in_o italy_n and_o in_o the_o east_n they_o advance_v to_o the_o veneration_n of_o they_o though_o this_o novelty_n meet_v with_o great_a opposition_n in_o the_o east_n till_o the_o ten_o century_n and_o in_o the_o west_n till_o the_o thirteen_o century_n communion_n in_o one_o kind_a come_v in_o among_o some_o monk_n in_o the_o eleven_o century_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o negligence_n and_o rudeness_n which_o make_v their_o governor_n not_o trust_v they_o with_o the_o cup_n lest_o they_o shall_v spill_v it_o in_o the_o twelve_o century_n it_o begin_v to_o take_v place_n in_o minoribus_fw-la ecclesiis_fw-la in_o lesser_a church_n the_o approbation_n of_o thomas_n aquinas_n make_v it_o still_o more_o prevail_v in_o the_o thirteen_o century_n and_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o fifteen_o century_n it_o be_v establish_v for_o a_o law._n finis_fw-la a_o treatise_n of_o tradition_n part_n ii_o imprimatur_fw-la libre_fw-la cvi_fw-la titulus_fw-la a_o treatise_n of_o tradition_n part_n ii_o july_n 12._o 1688._o guil._n needham_n rr._n in_o christo_n p._n ac_fw-la d.d._n wilhelmo_n archiep._n cant._n a_o sacr._n dome_a a_o treatise_n of_o tradition_n part_n ii_o show_v the_o novelty_n of_o the_o pretend_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o be_v i._n not_o mention_v by_o the_o ancient_n of_o their_o discourse_n of_o tradition_n apostolical_a true_o so_o call_v or_o so_o esteem_v by_o they_o nor_o ii_o in_o their_o avow_a rule_n or_o symbol_n of_o faith._n nor_o iii_o in_o the_o instruction_n give_v to_o the_o clergy_n concern_v all_o those_o thing_n they_o be_v to_o teach_v the_o people_n nor_o iv_o in_o the_o examination_n of_o a_o bishop_n at_o his_o ordination_n nor_o v._o in_o the_o ancient_a treatise_n design_v to_o instruct_v christian_n in_o all_o the_o article_n of_o their_o faith._n vi_o from_o the_o confession_n of_o romish_a doctor_n with_o a_o answer_n to_o the_o argument_n of_o mr._n mumford_n for_o tradition_n and_o a_o demonstration_n that_o the_o heathen_n make_v the_o same_o plea_n from_o tradition_n as_o the_o romanist_n do_v and_o that_o the_o answer_n of_o the_o father_n to_o it_o do_v full_o justify_v the_o protestant_n jam_fw-la primo_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o nos_fw-la generali_fw-la accusatione_fw-la dirigitis_fw-la divortium_fw-la ab_fw-la institutis_fw-la majorum_fw-la considerate_a etiam_fw-la atque_fw-la etiam_fw-la ne_fw-la vobiscum_fw-la communicemus_fw-la crimen_fw-la istud_fw-la ecce_fw-la enim_fw-la per_fw-la omne_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la ac_fw-la disciplinae_fw-la corruptam_fw-la immo_fw-la deletam_fw-la in_o vobis_fw-la antiquitatem_fw-la recognosco_fw-la exclusa_fw-la ubique_fw-la antiquitas_fw-la in_fw-la negotiis_fw-la in_fw-la officiis_fw-la totam_fw-la auctoritatem_fw-la majorum_fw-la vestra_fw-la auctoritas_fw-la dejecti●_n tertullianus_n ad_fw-la nationes_fw-la lib._n 1._o cap._n 10._o london_n print_v by_o j._n leake_n for_o awnsham_n churchill_n at_o the_o black_a swan_n in_o ave-mary_n lane_n mdclxxxix_o the_o preface_n the_o content_n show_v first_o that_o the_o lord_n day_n be_v mention_v in_o scripture_n as_o a_o know_a festival_n day_n a_o day_n which_o bear_v christ_n name_n and_o on_o which_o christian_n do_v assemble_v for_o religious_a worship_n 1._o from_o those_o word_n rev._n 1.10_o i_o be_v in_o the_o spirit_n on_o the_o lord_n day_n day_n 1._o 2._o from_o 1_o cor._n xuj_o 2._o 2._o 2._o 3._o from_o act._n xx_o 7._o 7._o 3._o 4._o from_o the_o unanimous_a and_o uncontroulled_a testimony_n of_o the_o father_n from_o the_o first_o and_o pure_a age_n of_o the_o church_n church_n 4._o and_o show_v second_o that_o the_o apostle_n be_v commissionated_a from_o the_o lord_n christ_n or_o be_v direct_v by_o his_o spirit_n to_o appoint_v this_o a_o day_n of_o public_a worship_n in_o honour_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o in_o remembrance_n of_o his_o resurrection_n resurrection_n 5._o the_o romanist_n can_v show_v no_o such_o tradition_n for_o any_o of_o the_o contest_v doctrine_n doctrine_n 6._o mr._n m_n argument_n retort_v against_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o tradition_n to_o establish_v this_o doctrine_n by_o show_v that_o there_o be_v no_o tradition_n for_o abstain_v whole_o from_o servile_a work_n upon_o that_o day_n but_o rather_o the_o contrary_a contrary_a 7._o the_o not_o observe_v of_o this_o day_n through_o ignorance_n of_o our_o obligation_n so_o to_o do_v be_v not_o destructive_a of_o salvation_n salvation_n 8._o the_o command_n for_o remember_v the_o seven_o day_n from_o the_o creation_n to_o rest_v upon_o it_o from_o all_o manner_n of_o work_n be_v ceremonial_a and_o not_o moral_a this_o prove_v one_a from_o reason_n reason_n 9_o two_o from_o the_o word_n and_o action_n of_o our_o saviour_n saviour_n 10._o three_o from_o gal._n four_o 10_o 11._o 11._o 11._o 4thly_a from_o col._n ij_o 14_o 16_o 17._o 17._o 12._o 5thly_a from_o the_o unanimous_a assertion_n of_o the_o father_n father_n 13._o mr._n m_n first_o objection_n from_o god_n blessing_n and_o hallow_v this_o day_n answer_v answer_v 14._o his_o second_o objection_n from_o those_o word_n of_o christ_n if_o thou_o will_v enter_v into_o life_n keep_v the_o commandment_n answer_v answer_v 15._o his_o three_o objection_n that_o saint_n paul_n frequent_v synagogue_n on_o
corbonam_fw-la omnino_fw-la non_fw-la respicis_fw-la de_fw-fr opere_fw-la &_o eleemos_fw-la p._n 203._o as_o their_o want_n require_v saint_n cyprian_n also_o tax_v the_o omission_n of_o this_o duty_n on_o the_o lord_n day_n as_o a_o fault_n in_o rich_a and_o able_a person_n say_v thou_o be_v wealthy_a and_o rich_a and_o think_v thou_o that_o thou_o observe_v the_o lord_n day_n who_o do_v not_o at_o all_o respect_n the_o poor_a man_n box_n three_o all_o the_o ancient_a commentator_n on_o this_o place_n both_o greek_a and_o latin_a unanimous_o interpret_v this_o of_o the_o lord_n be_v day_n ambrose_n and_o primasius_n among_o the_o latin_n chrysostom_n theodoret_n oecumenius_n and_o theophylact_fw-mi among_o the_o greek_n second_o observe_v that_o no_o good_a reason_n can_v be_v give_v why_o the_o apostle_n shall_v limit_v the_o collection_n of_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n and_o galatia_n to_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n but_o this_o that_o this_o day_n be_v appoint_v for_o the_o worship_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o so_o more_o fit_a for_o the_o performance_n of_o those_o duty_n which_o concern_v his_o distress_a member_n in_o those_o time_n for_o as_o the_o work_n of_o charity_n and_o mercy_n be_v proper_a duty_n of_o this_o day_n so_o do_v this_o day_n contain_v a_o special_a motive_n in_o it_o to_o enlarge_v their_o charley_n it_o be_v the_o day_n in_o which_o they_o be_v beget_v to_o a_o lively_a hope_n through_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o in_o which_o they_o constant_o in_o those_o time_n participate_v of_o his_o precious_a body_n and_o blood_n and_o therefore_o have_v then_o receive_v spiritual_a thing_n so_o plentiful_o from_o christ_n must_v be_v more_o ready_a to_o impart_v of_o their_o temporal_n to_o his_o needy_a servant_n three_o observe_v that_o shall_v the_o text_n be_v render_v thus_o let_v every_o one_o lay_v up_o against_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n there_o will_v be_v some_o good_a reason_n for_o that_o precept_n provide_v that_o it_o be_v a_o day_n appoint_v for_o the_o service_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o assembly_n of_o all_o christian_a people_n for_o meet_v thus_o together_o on_o that_o day_n they_o may_v then_o bring_v to_o the_o assembly_n what_o they_o have_v treasure_v up_o against_o that_o time_n and_o then_o put_v it_o into_o the_o public_a bank_n as_o the_o custom_n be_v in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o they_o do_v so_o here_o at_o corinth_n seem_v high_o probable_a from_o the_o design_n of_o the_o apostle_n precept_n for_o he_o exhort_v they_o to_o have_v their_o charity_n ready_a that_o there_o may_v be_v no_o need_n of_o a_o collection_n when_o he_o come_v whereas_o if_o they_o have_v keep_v their_o charity_n in_o their_o own_o hand_n and_o not_o put_v it_o into_o the_o public_a stock_n there_o will_v still_o have_v be_v need_n of_o a_o collection_n at_o his_o come_n 2_o the_o apostle_n may_v command_v to_o lay_v it_o up_o against_o that_o day_n to_o be_v then_o offer_v to_o the_o lord_n because_o our_o charity_n to_o his_o distress_a member_n be_v a_o odour_n of_o a_o sweet_a smell_a savour_n 10.4_o philip._n 4.18_o act._n 10.4_o a_o sacrifice_n well-pleasing_a to_o god_n a_o duty_n fit_o join_v with_o our_o prayer_n that_o so_o they_o may_v come_v up_o together_o as_o a_o memorial_n before_o god._n since_o therefore_o whether_o we_o translate_v the_o word_n be_v upon_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n or_o against_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n no_o reason_n do_v appear_v why_o saint_n paul_n shall_v pitch_v upon_o that_o day_n have_v it_o not_o be_v the_o day_n of_o their_o assemble_v together_o the_o day_n on_o which_o they_o meet_v to_o serve_v the_o lord_n christ_n we_o ought_v in_o reason_n to_o conclude_v it_o be_v so_o and_o if_o for_o the_o performance_n of_o this_o work_n of_o charity_n on_o the_o lord_n day_n saint_n paul_n think_v fit_a to_o give_v his_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o special_a order_n can_v we_o suppose_v the_o day_n itself_o shall_v be_v observe_v without_o appointment_n of_o the_o say_a apostle_n or_o other_o of_o like_a power_n with_o he_o especial_o if_o we_o consider_v that_o clemens_n the_o contemporary_a of_o the_o apostle_n 40._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d epist_n ad_fw-la cor._n cor._n 40._o do_v inform_v we_o that_o our_o lord_n command_v our_o oblation_n and_o liturgy_n shall_v be_v perform_v at_o time_n appoint_v and_o not_o disorderly_a but_o at_o those_o very_a time_n and_o season_n which_o he_o have_v ordain_v and_o thence_o conclude_v that_o they_o who_o offer_v their_o oblation_n in_o those_o appoint_a season_n be_v bless_v and_o acceptable_a to_o god_n and_o that_o because_o they_o act_v agreeable_o to_o the_o commandment_n of_o their_o lord_n for_o if_o christ_n himself_o give_v law_n for_o the_o time_n when_o and_o the_o person_n by_o who_o he_o will_v have_v divine_a office_n perform_v as_o clemens_n here_o do_v plain_o teach_v there_o be_v little_a doubt_n to_o be_v make_v but_o the_o lord_n day_n be_v his_o own_o ordinance_n and_o if_o as_o he_o there_o add_v these_o thing_n be_v define_v by_o his_o sovereign_a counsel_n that_o all_o thing_n be_v do_v religious_o according_a to_o his_o good_a pleasure_n may_v be_v acceptable_a in_o his_o sight_n it_o follow_v that_o this_o time_n can_v not_o religious_o have_v be_v set_v apart_o for_o his_o service_n or_o have_v be_v acceptable_a to_o he_o have_v it_o not_o be_v appoint_v by_o the_o counsel_n of_o his_o will_n so_o that_o although_o this_o text_n do_v not_o express_o command_v that_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n shall_v be_v observe_v as_o the_o christian_n weekly_a festival_n yet_o if_o we_o join_v with_o it_o the_o uniform_a practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n then_o and_o ever_o since_o they_o joint_o prove_v that_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n be_v the_o weekly_a festival_n of_o christian_n at_o that_o time_n and_o strong_o do_v imply_v or_o suppose_v that_o before_o this_o apostolical_a ordinance_n for_o these_o collection_n on_o this_o day_n there_o be_v another_o for_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o day_n itself_o for_o how_o can_v it_o have_v happen_v that_o all_o the_o apostolical_a church_n throughout_o the_o world_n shall_v from_o the_o beginning_n have_v accord_v to_o make_v this_o day_n a_o weekly_a festival_n unless_o they_o have_v be_v direct_v thus_o to_o do_v by_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o by_o who_o they_o be_v at_o first_o convert_v to_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o with_o that_o faith_n receive_v this_o institution_n 3_o we_o have_v another_o scripture_n act._n xx_o 7._o 7._o 3_o which_o fair_o seem_v to_o conclude_v that_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o christian_a church_n do_v then_o observe_v this_o day_n and_o meet_v for_o the_o performance_n of_o religious_a worship_n on_o it_o for_o there_o it_o be_v express_o say_v that_o upon_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n when_o the_o disciple_n come_v together_o to_o break_v bread_n paul_n preach_v unto_o they_o where_o note_n 1._o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n be_v certain_o the_o lord_n day_n as_o have_v already_o be_v make_v manifest_a 2._o observe_v that_o on_o this_o day_n the_o disciple_n be_v not_o summon_v extraordinary_o to_o come_v together_o that_o saint_n paul_n do_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d call_v they_o together_o as_o he_o do_v the_o assembly_n of_o the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n v._o 17._o but_o the_o disciple_n be_v themselves_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d meet_v in_o their_o synaxis_n or_o assembly_n the_o text_n inform_v we_o that_o saint_n paul_n carry_v with_o they_o seven_o day_n and_o in_o none_o of_o they_o have_v we_o any_o mention_n of_o a_o assembly_n to_o this_o purpose_n but_o only_o on_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n 3._o observe_v that_o they_o than_o meet_v together_o to_o break_v bread_n which_o phrase_n do_v signify_v the_o sacred_a action_n perform_v in_o celebration_n of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n which_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o primitive_a christian_n to_o receive_v in_o all_o their_o church_n assembly_n on_o the_o lord_n day_n xi_o 1_o cor._n xi_o this_o the_o apostle_n intimate_v when_o he_o complain_v of_o his_o corinthian_n that_o they_o come_v together_o for_o the_o worse_o because_o when_o they_o come_v together_o in_o the_o church_n there_o be_v division_n among_o they_o so_o that_o they_o do_v not_o eat_v together_o of_o the_o table_n of_o the_o lord_n now_o thus_o to_o come_v together_o in_o one_o place_n say_v he_o be_v not_o to_o eat_v the_o lord_n supper_n i._n e._n it_o be_v not_o so_o to_o do_v it_o as_o the_o sacred_a action_n ought_v to_o be_v perform_v this_o therefore_o when_o they_o come_v
be_v observe_v by_o christian_n the_o day_n of_o rest_n enjoin_v in_o the_o four_o commandment_n must_v be_v abolish_v which_o be_v the_o thing_n to_o be_v prove_v three_o three_o 12_o this_o will_v be_v still_o more_o evident_a from_o those_o word_n of_o the_o same_o apostle_n to_o the_o colossian_n affirm_v argum._n 3_o 17._o 2_o coloss_n fourteen_o 16_o 17._o that_o christ_n have_v blot_v out_o the_o hand-writing_n of_o ordinance_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o we_o and_o have_v take_v it_o out_o of_o the_o way_n nail_v it_o to_o his_o cross_n and_o make_v thence_o this_o inference_n let_v no_o man_n therefore_o judge_v you_o in_o meat_n or_o in_o drink_n or_o in_o respect_n of_o a_o holy_a day_n or_o of_o the_o new_a moon_n or_o of_o the_o sabbath_n day_n which_o be_v a_o shadow_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v but_o the_o body_n be_v of_o christ_n where_o note_n one_a that_o the_o hand-writing_n of_o ordinance_n respect_v ceremonial_a order_n for_o of_o they_o only_o can_v it_o be_v true_o say_v that_o they_o be_v against_o we_o and_o be_v contrary_a to_o we_o as_o be_v yoke_n of_o bondage_n and_o burden_n grievous_a to_o be_v bear_v that_o they_o be_v blot_v out_o and_o cancel_v and_o nail_v to_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o they_o be_v shadow_n of_o or_o shadow_n in_o respect_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v 2_o when_o it_o be_v say_v let_v no_o man_n judge_v you_o in_o respect_n of_o these_o thing_n the_o meaning_n clear_o be_v let_v no_o man_n censure_n or_o condemn_v the_o christian_a for_o not_o observe_v these_o new_a moon_n feast_n or_o sabbath_n hence_o than_o these_o argument_n result_v first_o no_o man_n ought_v to_o condemn_v the_o christian_a for_o not_o observe_v of_o the_o jewish_a sabbath_n because_o that_o christ_n have_v blot_v out_o the_o hand-writing_n of_o ceremonial_a ordinance_n which_o be_v against_o they_o therefore_o the_o jewish_a sabbath_n be_v a_o ceremonial_a ordinance_n therefore_o it_o be_v blot_v out_o therefore_o the_o christian_a be_v not_o oblige_v to_o observe_v it_o that_o which_o be_v join_v with_o meat_n and_o drink_n and_o with_o new_a moon_n which_o be_v thing_n confess_o ceremonial_a no_o difference_n at_o all_o be_v observe_v by_o the_o apostle_n as_o to_o their_o be_v name_v hand-writing_n thing_n cancel_v shadow_n or_o the_o like_a that_o must_v be_v ceremonial_a that_o which_o be_v a_o shadow_n of_o or_o in_o respect_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v of_o which_o christ_n by_o his_o advent_n exhibit_v the_o body_n that_o must_v be_v ceremonial_a that_o must_v be_v cancel_v and_o abolish_v by_o christ_n therefore_o the_o jewish_a sabbath_n must_v be_v abolish_v as_o be_v only_o ceremonial_a the_o answer_n which_o the_o sabbatarian_o return_v to_o this_o last_o argument_n be_v these_o one_a answer_v 1_o that_o the_o apostle_n mean_v here_o by_o sabbath_n not_o the_o weekly_a sabbath_n of_o the_o jew_n but_o the_o first_o and_o last_o day_n of_o the_o great_a jewish_a feast_n which_o be_v by_o they_o observe_v as_o sabbath_n and_o be_v in_o scripture_n sometime_o style_v by_o that_o name_n 1._o reply_n the_o apostle_n have_v say_v before_o let_v no_o man_n condemn_v you_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o not_o observe_v of_o the_o jewish_a festival_n or_o any_o part_n thereof_o can_v be_v rational_o suppose_v in_o the_o word_n sabbath_n follow_v to_o forbid_v only_o the_o same_o thing_n 2._o in_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o word_n sabbath_n or_o sabbath_n be_v use_v above_o sixty_o time_n and_o in_o fifty_o six_o of_o those_o place_n it_o do_v unquestionable_o signify_v the_o jewish_a weekly_a sabbath_n and_o in_o the_o other_o place_n the_o whole_a week_n since_o then_o the_o sabbath_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v never_o use_v for_o the_o first_o and_o last_o day_n of_o the_o jewish_a feast_n but_o ordinary_o be_v there_o use_v for_o their_o weekly_a sabbath_n we_o ought_v in_o reason_n to_o conclude_v it_o here_o import_v the_o same_o thing_n which_o it_o be_v use_v to_o signify_v where_o it_o be_v mention_v in_o other_o place_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o not_o conceive_v it_o here_o import_v that_o which_o it_o be_v never_o use_v to_o signify_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n that_o be_v we_o ought_v to_o judge_n be_v signify_v the_o seven_o day_n sabbath_n and_o not_o the_o solemn_a day_n of_o the_o great_a jewish_a feast_n 3._o wherever_o the_o word_n sabbath_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v mention_v in_o conjunction_n with_o new_a moon_n or_o jewish_a feast_n it_o do_v import_v the_o seven_o day_n sabbath_n distinct_o and_z separately_z from_o all_o other_o as_o will_v appear_v from_o the_o perusal_n of_o all_o the_o place_n where_o these_o thing_n be_v joint_o mention_v as_o v._o g._n 2_o king_n four_o 23._o esa_n i._o 13._o esa_n lxvi_o 23._o lament_n ij_o 6._o ezek._n xlv_o 17._o ezek._n xlvi_o 1._o hos_fw-la ij_o 11._o amos_n viij_o 5._o be_v then_o here_o mention_v together_o with_o new_a moon_n and_o jewish_a feast_n it_o be_v reasonable_a to_o conceive_v it_o signify_v the_o same_o thing_n 4._o the_o sabbath_n day_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v often_o contradistinguish_v to_o all_o other_o solemn_a feast_n and_o more_o particular_o to_o new_a moon_n and_o anniversary_n feast_n and_o therefore_o be_v here_o mention_v with_o they_o we_o may_v presume_v it_o can_v signify_v they_o or_o any_o portion_n of_o they_o but_o rather_o that_o it_o do_v import_v that_o jewish_a sabbath_n which_o in_o other_o place_n be_v put_v in_o opposition_n to_o they_o as_o for_o example_n 1_o chron._n twenty-three_o 31._o 2_o chron._n ij_o 4._o xxxi_o 3._o neh._n x._o 32_o 33._o and_o last_o moses_n have_v reckon_v up_o the_o solemn_a feast_n leviticus_n the_o 23_o he_o add_v v._o 37_o 38._o these_o be_v the_o feast_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o you_o shall_v proclaim_v beside_o the_o sabbath_n of_o the_o lord_n see_v then_o the_o word_n sabbath_n wherever_o it_o be_v use_v in_o conjunction_n with_o new_a moon_n or_o feast_n in_o the_o whole_a book_n of_o god_n do_v always_o signify_v the_o jewish_a weekly_a sabbath_n we_o can_v doubt_v but_o in_o conjunction_n with_o they_o here_o it_o signify_v the_o same_o see_v the_o word_n be_v often_o put_v in_o opposition_n to_o new_a moon_n and_o solemn_a feast_n indefinite_o take_v what_o reason_n have_v we_o to_o conceive_v that_o in_o this_o place_n it_o shall_v be_v take_v for_o any_o part_n or_o portion_n of_o they_o some_o sabbatarian_o tell_v we_o answ_n 2_o that_o by_o sabbath_n here_o the_o apostle_n understand_v not_o the_o weekly_a but_o the_o yearly_a sabbath_n viz._n the_o seven_o year_n sabbath_n and_o the_o sabbath_n of_o the_o year_n of_o jubilee_n but_o the_o same_o observation_n do_v confute_v this_o gloss_n reply_v for_o see_v the_o word_n sabbath_n in_o the_o whole_a new_a testament_n do_v never_o signify_v the_o yearly_a sabbath_n but_o still_o the_o seven_o day_n sabbath_n or_o the_o whole_a week_n since_o the_o word_n sabbath_n when_o it_o be_v join_v with_o new_a moon_n and_o feast_n as_o here_o it_o be_v do_v always_o fignifie_v the_o seven_o day_n sabbath_n this_o sabbatarian_n gloss_n must_v be_v repugnant_a to_o that_o sense_n in_o which_o the_o word_n be_v use_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o therefore_o contrary_a to_o those_o rule_n by_o which_o we_o be_v oblige_v to_o expound_v the_o scripture_n it_o be_v three_o answer_v answ_n 3_o that_o the_o apostle_n say_v not_o as_o the_o word_n be_v render_v let_v no_o man_n judge_v you_o in_o respect_n of_o a_o feast_n but_o as_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v render_v let_v no_o man_n judge_v you_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o part_n of_o a_o feast_n new_a moon_n or_o sabbath_n whence_o they_o conclude_v that_o he_o intend_v not_o the_o whole_a sabbath_n but_o that_o part_n of_o it_o which_o consist_v in_o offer_v sacrifice_n and_o this_o he_o call_v a_o shadow_n or_o a_o hand-writing_n of_o ordinance_n this_o quarrel_n at_o the_o translation_n of_o these_o word_n be_v groundless_a reply_v for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v as_o true_o signify_v on_o the_o account_n or_o on_o behalf_n or_o in_o respect_n as_o it_o do_v signify_v in_o part_n as_o when_o the_o same_o apostle_n say_v 3.10_o 2_o cor._n 3.10_o that_o which_o be_v make_v glorious_a have_v no_o glory_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o this_o respect_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o glory_n that_o excel_v 9.3_o 2_o cor._n 9.3_o and_o again_o i_o have_v send_v the_o brethren_n lest_o our_o boast_n of_o you_o shall_v be_v in_o vain_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d on_o this_o behalf_n 4.16_o 1_o pet._n 4.16_o and_o when_o saint_n peter_n say_v if_o any_o man_n suffer_v as_o a_o christian_a let_v he_o not_o be_v ashamed_a but_o let_v he_o glorify_v god_n 〈◊〉_d
contain_v in_o the_o apostle_n or_o the_o nicene_n creed_n or_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n must_v be_v schismatical_a in_o exclude_v from_o her_o communion_n those_o who_o do_v not_o believe_v or_o yield_v assent_n unto_o they_o and_o thus_o i_o hope_v i_o have_v sufficient_o show_v how_o this_o tradition_n overthrow_v and_o full_o do_v confute_v the_o new_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o now_o remain_v to_o show_v how_o it_o confirm_v the_o cause_n of_o protestant_n and_o clear_v up_o the_o objection_n which_o be_v make_v against_o it_o now_o first_o first_o 5_o seeing_z according_a to_o this_o tradition_n these_o symbol_n as_o they_o be_v a_o perfect_a summary_n of_o christian_a faith_n so_o be_v they_o full_o and_o perspicuous_o contain_v in_o scripture_n hence_o it_o demonstrative_o follow_v that_o according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n the_o sum_n of_o all_o the_o necessary_a article_n of_o christian_a faith_n must_v full_o and_o perspicuous_o be_v contain_v in_o holy_a scripture_n and_o may_v be_v prove_v thence_o to_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o the_o mean_a catechist_n and_o consequent_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v by_o they_o esteem_v a_o full_a and_o perspicuous_a rule_n of_o faith_n according_a to_o our_o six_o note_n in_o reference_n to_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v which_o be_v the_o fundamental_a article_n of_o protestant_n but_o do_v not_o tertullian_n speak_v in_o general_n object_n nb._n of_o never_o dispute_v with_o heretic_n out_o of_o scripture_n only_o 259._o q._n of_o quest_n p._n 258_o 259._o because_o this_o scripture_n combat_n avail_v for_o nothing_o but_o to_o the_o make_v either_o one_o stomach_n or_o one_o brain_n to_o turn_v and_o conclude_v general_o we_o must_v not_o therefore_o appeal_v to_o scripture_n nor_o in_o our_o combat_n rely_v upon_o they_o in_o which_o either_o no_o victory_n be_v to_o be_v obtain_v or_o a_o very_a uncertain_a one_o tertullian_n here_o propose_v this_o objection_n answ_n that_o the_o heretic_n speak_v of_o the_o scripture_n 8._o v._o c._n 7._o 7._o 8._o and_o persuade_v their_o doctrine_n from_o the_o scripture_n and_o this_o he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o reprehend_v that_o he_o hold_v it_o a_o thing_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o be_v do_v by_o all_o who_o will_v discourse_v of_o divine_a matter_n it_o be_v impossible_a say_v he_o aliunde_fw-la de_fw-la rebus_fw-la fidei_fw-la loqui_fw-la 15._o de_fw-fr prescript_n cap._n 15._o quàm_fw-la ex_fw-la literis_fw-la fidei_fw-la to_o speak_v of_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o from_o the_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o he_o not_o only_o own_v that_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n he_o plead_v for_o be_v first_o deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n and_o after_o by_o the_o write_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o also_o to_o that_o objection_n of_o the_o heretic_n seek_v and_o you_o shall_v find_v 9_o cap._n 9_o he_o answer_v by_o grant_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v search_v and_o seek_v into_o for_o find_v out_o the_o truth_n contain_v in_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o then_o nothing_o more_o respect_v faith_n be_v needful_a to_o be_v seek_v because_o they_o have_v find_v what_o they_o seek_v for_o then_o he_o proceed_v to_o show_v non_fw-la admittendos_fw-la eos_fw-la ad_fw-la ullam_fw-la de_fw-la scripture_n disputationem_fw-la that_o the_o heretic_n be_v not_o to_o be_v admit_v to_o dispute_v from_o scripture_n and_o that_o non_fw-la sit_fw-la cum_fw-la illo_fw-la disputandum_fw-la he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v dispute_v with_o from_o scripture_n for_o these_o follow_a reason_n 1._o because_o ista_fw-la haeresis_fw-la non_fw-la recipit_fw-la quasdam_fw-la scripturas_fw-la those_o heretic_n receive_v not_o some_o scripture_n viz._n 26._o iren._n l._n 1._o c._n 26._o the_o ebionite_n and_o encratites_n reject_v all_o st._n paul_n epistle_n and_o embrace_v only_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o nazarene_o 259._o l._n 3._o c._n 11._o p._n 258_o 259._o cerinthus_n allow_v only_o the_o gospel_n of_o st._n mark._n valentinus_n only_o that_o of_o st._n john_n martion_n only_o that_o of_o luke_n ebion_n only_o that_o of_o matthew_n 2._o because_o si_fw-la quas_fw-la recipit_fw-la non_fw-la recipit_fw-la integras_fw-la those_o scripture_n which_o they_o own_v they_o receive_v not_o entire_a but_o with_o addition_n and_o detraction_n as_o their_o cause_n require_v cut_v off_o from_o they_o what_o most_o clear_o make_v against_o then_o heresy_n thus_o of_o the_o marcionite_n and_o the_o lucianist_n and_o the_o valentinian_o origen_n confess_v that_o they_o do_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 77._o contra_fw-la celsum_fw-la l._n 2._o p._n 77._o change_n and_o pervert_v the_o gospel_n 3._o because_o if_o they_o admit_v any_o scripture_n entire_a yet_o they_o corrupt_v they_o per_fw-la diversas_fw-la expositiones_fw-la by_o adulterate_v the_o sense_n of_o they_o and_o miserable_o distort_v they_o to_o the_o uphold_v of_o their_o idle_a dream_n for_o say_v irenaeus_n they_o say_v their_o doctrine_n be_v not_o perspicuous_o reveal_v in_o scripture_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 14._o l._n 1._o c._n 1._o p._n 14._o but_o by_o our_o lord_n be_v mystical_o couch_v in_o parable_n even_o so_o mystical_o that_o as_o you_o may_v see_v from_o the_o first_o to_o the_o nineteenth_o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o book_n of_o irenaeus_n it_o be_v enough_o to_o turn_v a_o man_n stomach_n to_o read_v such_o foolery_n as_o v._o gr_n they_o prove_v their_o thirty_o aeones_n because_o our_o saviour_n be_v baptise_a when_o he_o be_v thirty_o year_n old_a and_o from_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o labourer_n send_v into_o the_o vineyard_n some_o at_o the_o one_a 3d_o 6_o 9th_o 11_o 10._o c._n 1._o p._n 10._o hour_n of_o the_o day_n which_o number_n put_v together_o make_v up_o thirty_o thus_o say_v irenaeus_n they_o endeavour_v to_o adapt_v some_o of_o our_o lord_n parable_n 32._o pag._n 32._o and_o some_o prophetical_a expression_n to_o their_o doctrine_n that_o they_o may_v not_o seem_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d without_o any_o testimony_n from_o scripture_n but_o then_o say_v he_o they_o miserable_o pervert_v the_o order_n and_o the_o series_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o deal_v with_o it_o as_o if_o one_o shall_v take_v the_o image_n of_o a_o king_n excellent_o make_v in_o jewel_n and_o shall_v deform_v it_o into_o the_o face_n of_o a_o dog_n or_o a_o woolf._n they_o pretend_v also_o that_o some_o of_o their_o doctrine_n be_v receive_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d from_o unwritten_a tradition_n 32._o c._n 1._o p._n 32._o and_o to_o prove_v they_o they_o produce_v a_o multitude_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o apocryphal_a and_o adulterate_a scripture_n which_o they_o have_v feign_v 17._o lib._n 1._o c._n 17._o pretend_v for_o their_o recourse_n unto_o tradition_n this_o accusation_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 2._o lib._n 3._o c._n 2._o that_o they_o be_v not_o right_a nor_o of_o authority_n sufficient_a because_o they_o be_v speak_v various_o and_o that_o from_o they_o the_o truth_n can_v not_o be_v find_v out_o by_o such_o as_o be_v ignorant_a of_o tradition_n non_fw-la enim_fw-la per_fw-la literas_fw-la traditum_fw-la illum_fw-la sed_fw-la per_fw-la vivam_fw-la vocem_fw-la it_o be_v not_o deliver_v in_o writing_n but_o by_o oral_a tradition_n that_o be_v they_o be_v plain_a papist_n as_o to_o this_o pretence_n against_o such_o man_n as_o these_o say_v tertullian_n the_o most_o skilful_a in_o the_o scripture_n will_v dispute_v in_o vain_a from_o scripture_n cum_fw-la nolunt_fw-la agnoscere_fw-la ea_fw-la per_fw-la quae_fw-la revincuntur_fw-la his_fw-la nituntur_fw-la quae_fw-la falso_fw-la composuerunt_fw-la &_o quae_fw-la de_fw-la ambiguitate_fw-la coeperunt_fw-la since_o they_o will_v not_o own_o that_o for_o scripture_n by_o which_o they_o be_v refute_v they_o will_v insist_v upon_o their_o apocryphal_a write_n and_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o ambiguous_o have_v conceive_v ergo_fw-la non_fw-la ad_fw-la scripturas_fw-la provocandum_fw-la est_fw-la and_o therefore_o we_o be_v not_o to_o provoke_v they_o to_o dispute_v out_o of_o scripture_n nor_o place_v our_o combat_n in_o those_o thing_n in_o which_o no_o victory_n be_v to_o be_v obtain_v or_o a_o very_a uncertain_a one_o let_v now_o any_o indifferent_a reader_n judge_n whether_o tertullian_n speak_v in_o general_a against_o dispute_v with_o heretic_n out_o of_o scripture_n as_o mr._n m._n here_o confident_o say_v and_o not_o only_o of_o dispute_v against_o hanc_fw-la haeresin_fw-la that_o very_a heresy_n which_o have_v these_o art_n to_o delude_v what_o be_v bring_v against_o they_o from_o scripture_n and_o appeal_v from_o it_o with_o the_o papist_n to_o oral_a tradition_n and_o yet_o against_o these_o slippery_a man_n irenaeus_n and_o other_o of_o the_o father_n first_o argue_v from_o scripture_n &_o cum_fw-la ex_fw-la scripture_n arguebantur_fw-la and_o when_o they_o have_v baffle_v they_o there_o and_o make_v they_o fly_v as_o romanist_n now_o do_v unto_o
holy_a spirit_n dwell_v in_o their_o heart_n they_o also_o add_v that_o this_o write_a law_n be_v give_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 349._o constit_fw-la apost_n ibid._n p._n 349._o to_o supply_v the_o defect_n of_o the_o law_n of_o ●●ature_n by_o that_o god_n who_o will_v not_o suffer_v they_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v seduce_v clear_o insinuate_v that_o tradition_n without_o this_o write_a law_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o supply_v the_o defect_n of_o that_o of_o nature_n or_o to_o preserve_v they_o from_o error_n as_o will_v be_v far_a evident_a if_o we_o consider_v that_o both_o the_o antediluvian_o and_o they_o who_o live_v after_o the_o flood_n and_o before_o the_o write_n of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n have_v general_o corrupt_v their_o way_n and_o deviate_v from_o that_o tradition_n which_o they_o undoubted_o receive_v from_o adam_n and_o from_o noah_n touch_v the_o worship_n of_o the_o true_a and_o only_o god._n for_o even_o whilst_o adam_n be_v alive_a 4.26_o in_o gen._n 4.26_o and_o have_v not_o pass_v half_o his_o day_n man_n begin_v say_v the_o chaldee_n paraphra_v to_o profane_v the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n 26._o ainsw_n in_o gen._n 4._o v._n 26._o by_o cease_v to_o pray_v to_o he_o the_o hebrew_n doctor_n tell_v we_o that_o in_o the_o day_n of_o enosh_n the_o son_n of_o adam_n err_v with_o great_a error_n and_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o wise_a man_n of_o that_o age_n become_v brutish_a and_o their_o error_n be_v this_o they_o say_v forasmuch_o as_o god_n have_v create_v these_o star_n and_o sphere_n to_o govern_v the_o world_n and_o set_v they_o on_o high_a and_o impart_v honour_n to_o they_o and_o they_o be_v minister_n that_o minister_n before_o he_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o man_n shall_v laud_n and_o glorify_v and_o give_v they_o honour_n for_o this_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o we_o magnify_v and_o honour_v whosoever_o he_o magnify_v and_o honour_v when_o this_o thing_n be_v come_v up_o into_o their_o heart_n they_o begin_v to_o build_v temple_n to_o star_n and_o to_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o they_o and_o to_o laud_n and_o glorify_v they_o with_o word_n and_o to_o worship_n before_o they_o that_o they_o may_v in_o their_o evil_a opinion_n obtain_v favour_n of_o the_o creator_n and_o this_o be_v the_o root_n of_o idolatry_n ibid._n ibid._n and_o hence_o in_o the_o ancient_a commentary_n of_o the_o hebrew_n the_o age_n of_o enosh_n be_v represent_v as_o a_o wicked_a age._n in_o the_o time_n of_o enoch_n and_o before_o the_o death_n of_o adam_n wickedness_n have_v mighty_o prevail_v even_o among_o the_o son_n of_o god_n or_o member_n of_o the_o church_n for_o enoch_n be_v mention_v as_o the_o only_a man_n who_o adhere_v perfect_o to_o god_n and_o of_o he_o it_o be_v say_v 14._o wisd_v 4.10_o verse_n 11_o 14._o that_o he_o live_v among_o sinner_n and_o that_o god_n take_v he_o away_o from_o among_o the_o wicked_a lest_o their_o evil_a example_n shall_v corrupt_v his_o righteous_a soul._n after_o his_o assumption_n we_o find_v that_o man_n have_v general_o decline_v to_o iniquity_n that_o all_o flesh_n have_v corrupt_v their_o way_n 6.12_o gen._n 6.12_o except_v noah_n and_o his_o family_n that_o they_o have_v forsake_v god_n and_o give_v up_o themselves_o to_o idolatry_n say_v to_o god_n 22.17_o job_n 22.17_o depart_v from_o we_o and_o what_o can_v the_o almighty_a do_v for_o we_o about_o a_o hundred_o year_n after_o the_o flood_n they_o set_v themselves_o with_o one_o consent_n to_o build_v the_o tower_n of_o babel_n in_o opposition_n to_o god_n and_o in_o which_o say_v the_o hebrew_n ibid._n ainsw_n ibid._n they_o design_v a_o idol_n temple_n nahor_n and_o tharah_n the_o progenitor_n of_o abraham_n be_v idolater_n 53._o gen._n 31.30_o 53._o and_o after_o the_o call_v of_o abraham_n they_o continue_v so_o to_o be_v in_o the_o family_n of_o isaac_n esau_n and_o his_o wife_n be_v a_o bitterness_n of_o spirit_n to_o isaac_n and_o rebecca_n because_o they_o serve_v god_n with_o strange_a service_n say_v the_o jerusalem_n tergum_fw-la that_o be_v with_o idolatry_n in_o the_o family_n of_o jacob_n 35.2_o gen._n 31.22_o gen._n 35.2_o rebecca_n steal_v her_o father_n image_n in_o his_o house_n be_v worshipper_n of_o strange_a god_n and_o retainer_n of_o idol_n when_o the_o israelite_n live_v in_o egypt_n they_o so_o comply_v with_o their_o rite_n 28._o praepar_fw-la evang._n l._n 7._o c._n 28._o say_v eusebius_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o to_o forget_v the_o piety_n of_o their_o forefather_n they_o learn_v in_o egypt_n 492._o serm._n 2._o adv_n graec._n p._n 492._o say_v theodoret_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o worship_v many_o god_n with_o they_o they_o commit_v whoredom_n in_o egypt_n say_v ezekiel_n 2-19_a ezek_n 23_o 2-19_a they_o multiply_v the_o whoredom_n they_o have_v commit_v in_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n whence_o joshua_n speak_v thus_o unto_o they_o 24.14_o josh_n 24.14_o put_v away_o the_o god_n which_o your_o father_n serve_v in_o mesopotamia_n and_o in_o egypt_n here_o then_o be_v evidence_n sufficient_a first_o that_o the_o first_o age_n of_o the_o world_n be_v not_o abandon_v only_o to_o the_o uncertainty_n of_o tradition_n but_o be_v guide_v partly_o by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n and_o partly_o by_o immediate_a revelation_n tradition_n be_v by_o divine_a wisdom_n judge_v a_o more_o imperfect_a guide_n than_o the_o dim_a light_n of_o nature_n second_o that_o when_o it_o please_v god_n to_o give_v his_o people_n positive_a and_o ceremonial_a law_n he_o will_v by_o no_o mean_n leave_v they_o to_o the_o uncertainty_n of_o tradition_n but_o command_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v write_v in_o a_o book_n for_o a_o memorial_n to_o and_o for_o a_o testimony_n against_o they_o and_o shall_v thence_o be_v read_v by_o and_o to_o they_o that_o they_o and_o the_o generation_n to_o come_v may_v learn_v they_o and_o three_o that_o the_o service_n of_o the_o one_o true_a god_n receive_v by_o tradition_n from_o adam_n enoch_n and_o other_o before_o the_o flood_n from_o noah_n melchizedeck_v abraham_n and_o the_o patriarch_n after_o the_o flood_n be_v present_o corrupt_v and_o utter_o deface_v by_o idolatry_n to_o let_v we_o see_v how_o insufficient_a mere_a tradition_n be_v since_o even_o in_o the_o day_n and_o life_n of_o they_o who_o live_v so_o long_o and_o who_o deliver_v this_o fundamental_a article_n of_o worship_v the_o one_o true_a god_n unto_o their_o offspring_n they_o see_v they_o run_v headlong_o to_o idolatry_n and_o add_v many_o corrupt_a invention_n and_o vain_a imagination_n of_o their_o own_o unto_o that_o worship_n they_o have_v receive_v by_o tradition_n from_o they_o second_o second_o 5_o object_n 2_o mr._n m._n add_v that_o for_o above_o two_o thousand_o year_n more_o 231._o p._n 415._o p._n 231._o from_o moses_n until_o christ_n time_n the_o church_n be_v govern_v partly_o by_o write_v and_o partly_o by_o tradition_n for_o the_o jew_n have_v at_o least_o two_o undeniable_a tradition_n for_o they_o know_v only_o by_o tradition_n what_o remedy_n be_v to_o be_v use_v to_o free_v their_o female_a child_n from_o original_a sin_n as_o also_o to_o free_v their_o male_a child_n in_o danger_n of_o death_n before_o the_o eight_o day_n this_o remedy_n they_o know_v and_o observe_v and_o be_v bind_v to_o know_v and_o observe_v and_o yet_o they_o infallible_o know_v it_o without_o have_v any_o scripture_n express_v to_o they_o the_o knowledge_n of_o this_o remedy_n or_o of_o their_o obligation_n to_o use_v it_o or_o that_o it_o be_v so_o necessary_a for_o the_o salvation_n of_o their_o child_n who_o they_o do_v believe_v to_o be_v in_o original_a sin_n and_o by_o that_o debar_v from_o salvation_n unless_o some_o remedy_n be_v apply_v some_o remedy_n sure_o be_v as_o necessary_a for_o the_o female_a as_o circumcision_n for_o the_o male._n show_v i_o this_o remedy_n in_o scripture_n 2._o they_o true_o believe_v some_o of_o those_o bloody_a sacrifice_n to_o have_v be_v appoint_v to_o they_o by_o god_n for_o the_o expiation_n of_o their_o sin_n but_o they_o can_v not_o believe_v true_o that_o these_o sacrifice_n can_v expiate_v their_o sin_n by_o their_o own_o virtue_n they_o believe_v then_o that_o these_o sacrifice_n have_v their_o expiative_a virtue_n from_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n show_v i_o any_o text_n in_o which_o this_o be_v then_o write_v 1._o reply_n that_o the_o jewish_a church_n until_o christ_n time_n be_v govern_v partly_o by_o tradition_n or_o that_o tradition_n be_v their_o partial_a rule_n of_o faith_n in_o reference_n to_o any_o necessary_a doctrine_n or_o rule_n of_o manner_n will_v appear_v a_o vain_a imagination_n if_o we_o consider_v that_o in_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a and_o the_o new_a testament_n they_o be_v still_o send_v unto_o the_o write_a word_n to_o learn_v their_o duty_n
eo_fw-la tempore_fw-la judaea_n profecti_fw-la rerum_fw-la potirentur_fw-la a_o old_a and_o constant_a opinion_n that_o some_o out_o of_o judaea_n shall_v obtain_v the_o government_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o this_o prophecy_n be_v contain_v antiquis_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la literis_fw-la in_o the_o ancient_a write_n of_o the_o priest_n all_o the_o disciple_n of_o our_o lord_n do_v constant_o expect_v this_o temporal_a kingdom_n till_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n descent_n upon_o they_o they_o be_v inform_v better_a witness_v their_o contest_v 18.1_o matth._n 18.1_o who_o shall_v be_v the_o great_a in_o this_o kingdom_n and_o the_o desire_n of_o the_o son_n of_o zebedee_n to_o sit_v one_o at_o his_o right-hand_n 20.21_o matth._n 20.21_o and_o the_o other_o at_o his_o left_a in_o it_o and_o when_o they_o be_v assemble_v after_o his_o resurrection_n 1.6_o act._n 1.6_o this_o be_v their_o enquiry_n lord_n will_v thou_o now_o restore_v the_o kingdom_n to_o israel_n it_o be_v therefore_o certain_a that_o this_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o whole_a jewish_a church_n receive_v from_o their_o wise_a man_n and_o ground_v on_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o prophet_n as_o they_o do_v interpret_v they_o second_o it_o be_v also_o a_o tradition_n which_o general_o obtain_v among_o the_o jew_n that_o their_o elias_n who_o be_v call_v the_o tisbite_n be_v to_o appear_v in_o person_n at_o the_o advent_n of_o the_o true_a messiah_n 268._o justin_n m._n dial_n p._n 268._o and_o to_o anoint_v he_o to_o his_o office._n all_o we_o say_v trypho_n expect_v that_o christ_n shall_v be_v anoint_v by_o elias_n who_o be_v for_o to_o come_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o because_o elias_n be_v not_o come_v i_o think_v that_o our_o messiah_n be_v not_o come_v thus_o be_v that_o place_n of_o malachy_n translate_v by_o the_o seventy_o interpreter_n long_o before_o our_o saviour_n come_v 4.5_o mal._n 4.5_o behold_v i_o send_v unto_o you_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d elias_n the_o tisbite_n before_o the_o great_a and_o glorious_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n come_v according_o the_o scribe_n or_o the_o expounder_n of_o the_o law_n 9.11_o mark_v 9.11_o do_v with_o one_o voice_n declare_v it_o be_v necessary_a that_o elias_n shall_v come_v first_o three_o it_o be_v the_o general_a tradition_n of_o the_o jew_n that_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n shall_v be_v perpetual_o oblige_v to_o they_o and_o be_v observe_v even_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o messiah_n on_o this_o presumption_n certain_o it_o be_v that_o christ_n disciple_n after_o his_o resurrection_n be_v strict_a observer_n of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n for_o a_o considerable_a time_n and_o so_o be_v also_o the_o generality_n of_o the_o jewish_a convert_v st._n peter_n be_v so_o nice_a in_o observation_n of_o it_o as_o that_o till_o he_o be_v inform_v better_a by_o a_o vision_n he_o think_v such_o meat_n be_v utter_o unlawful_a as_o be_v forbid_v by_o the_o law_n so_o that_o he_o be_v in_o this_o vision_n bid_v to_o slay_v and_o eat_v cry_v out_o as_o a_o man_n tempt_v to_o a_o unlawful_a act_n 10.14_o act_n 10.14_o not_o so_o lord_n for_o i_o have_v never_o eat_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v unclean_a whence_o origen_n well_o note_n 57_o l._n 2._o contr._n cell_n p._n 56_o 57_o that_o he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o a_o long_a time_n keep_v the_o jewish_a custom_n according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d live_v according_a to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o jew_n he_o contemn_v those_o who_o be_v not_o of_o the_o jew_n and_o even_o when_o by_o this_o vision_n he_o be_v prevail_v upon_o to_o go_v unto_o cornelius_n he_o begin_v his_o speech_n to_o he_o thus_o 10.28_o act_n 10.28_o you_o know_v that_o it_o be_v a_o unlawful_a thing_n for_o a_o man_n that_o be_v a_o jew_n to_o keep_v company_n or_o come_v in_o to_o one_o of_o another_o nation_n 11.2_o act_n 11.2_o and_o when_o he_o have_v do_v it_o his_o brethren_n call_v he_o to_o a_o account_n and_o contend_v with_o he_o for_o it_o 21.20_o act_n 21.20_o st._n james_n give_v a_o account_n to_o paul_n of_o the_o great_a zeal_n that_o all_o the_o jewish_a convert_v have_v to_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n in_o these_o word_n thou_o see_v brother_n how_o many_o thousand_o jew_n there_o be_v which_o believe_v and_o they_o be_v all_o zealous_a of_o the_o law._n he_o far_o tell_v he_o how_o much_o they_o be_v offend_v with_o he_o because_o they_o hear_v that_o he_o have_v teach_v that_o they_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o obedience_n to_o the_o constitution_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o jewish_a law._n and_o last_o do_v exhort_v he_o to_o do_v what_o may_v be_v proper_a to_o cause_v they_o to_o believe_v that_o he_o also_o walk_v orderly_o and_o keep_v the_o law._n st._n jerome_n and_o sulpitius_n inform_v we_o 45._o chron._n euseb_n l._n 2._o c._n 45._o that_o fifteen_o of_o the_o first_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n with_o their_o flock_n be_v all_o observer_n of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o origen_n that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 56._o ibid._n p._n 56._o they_o of_o the_o jew_n who_o believe_v in_o jesus_n leave_v not_o their_o own_o law._n moreover_o by_o the_o unbelieve_a jew_n nothing_o be_v more_o abhor_v than_o the_o thought_n of_o change_v their_o mosaic_a custom_n their_o accusation_n against_o stephen_n be_v this_o that_o he_o have_v say_v 6.14_o act_n 6.14_o that_o the_o messiah_n shall_v change_v the_o custom_n which_o moses_n have_v deliver_v to_o they_o and_o this_o be_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o highpriest_n the_o elder_n and_o the_o scribe_n sufficient_a to_o prove_v he_o guilty_a of_o that_o capital_a offence_n of_o blasphemy_n on_o this_o account_n they_o bring_v st._n paul_n before_o the_o judgment-seat_n of_o gallio_n because_o say_v they_o he_o persuade_v man_n to_o worship_n god_n 1●_n act_n 18_o 1●_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d against_o or_o otherwise_o than_o be_v command_v by_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o when_o he_o make_v his_o apology_n unto_o the_o jew_n of_o rome_n for_o bear_v of_o his_o chain_n he_o do_v it_o in_o these_o word_n i_o have_v do_v nothing_o contrary_a to_o the_o law_n 28.17_o act_n 28.17_o or_o to_o the_o custom_n of_o my_o country_n 12.17_o deut._n 29.29_o levit._fw-la 3.17_o exod._n 12.17_o now_o this_o opinion_n they_o ground_v chief_o upon_o those_o place_n which_o seem_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o those_o statute_n and_o say_v they_o shall_v be_v ordinance_n to_o they_o for_o ever_o and_o consequent_o seem_v to_o infer_v a_o declaration_n from_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v alter_v lo_o here_o three_o plain_a tradition_n of_o the_o whole_a jewish_a church_n two_o of_o which_o plain_o tend_v to_o oblige_v they_o to_o renounce_v the_o true_a messiah_n and_o the_o three_o to_o blend_v judaisme_n with_o christianity_n and_o to_o refuse_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o the_o gentile_n here_o therefore_o be_v a_o threefold_a demonstration_n not_o only_o of_o the_o uncertainty_n but_o of_o the_o falsehood_n of_o the_o tradition_n which_o obtain_v in_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god._n for_o far_a demonstration_n of_o this_o matter_n matter_n 7_o let_v it_o be_v consider_v first_o that_o the_o tradition_n we_o have_v mention_v be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o tradition_n of_o the_o elder_n 1.14_o mark_v 7.3_o act_n 28.17_o gal._n 1.14_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o custom_n and_o tradition_n of_o their_o father_n they_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o they_o who_o sit_v in_o the_o chair_n of_o moses_n of_o the_o interpreter_n of_o scripture_n the_o guide_n of_o the_o common_a people_n they_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o those_o man_n who_o general_o have_v obtain_v the_o reputation_n of_o the_o great_a knowledge_n and_o exactness_n in_o the_o law_n who_o do_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 3._o joseph_n de_fw-fr bello_fw-la jud._n l._n 2._o c._n 12._o arch._n l._n 17._o c._n 3._o most_o exact_o interpret_v the_o law_n and_o declare_v the_o thing_n belong_v to_o they_o and_o who_o be_v by_o the_o jew_n esteem_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d more_o pious_a than_o the_o rest_n so_o that_o if_o these_o be_v foolish_a and_o blind_a guide_n they_o have_v no_o other_o to_o conduct_v they_o except_o those_o two_o pernicious_a guide_n of_o heretic_n the_o scripture_n and_o the_o use_n of_o reason_n second_o observe_v that_o these_o tradition_n be_v not_o teach_v only_o in_o our_o saviour_n age_n but_o long_o before_o they_o be_v custom_n and_o tradition_n of_o their_o forefather_n the_o asserter_n of_o they_o say_v josephus_n 2._o antiq._n l._n 18._o c._n 2._o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o most_o ancient_a of_o their_o countryman_n epiphanius_n inform_v we_o that_o they_o pretend_v to_o